Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n call_v scripture_n word_n 1,394 5 4.1742 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A16853 A revelation of the Apocalyps, that is, the Apocalyps of S. Iohn illustrated vvith an analysis & scolions where the sense is opened by the scripture, & the events of things foretold, shewed by histories. Hereunto is prefixed a generall view: and at the end of the 17. chapter, is inserted a refutation of R. Bellarmine touching Antichrist, in his 3. book of the B. of Rome. By Thomas Brightman.; Apocalypsis Apocalypseos. English Brightman, Thomas, 1562-1607. 1611 (1611) STC 3754; ESTC S106469 722,529 728

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

not_o emperor_n but_o murderer_n have_v defile_v all_o history_n with_o guiltless_a blood_n but_o he_o that_o follow_v brevity_n may_v not_o reckon_v up_o several_o the_o innumerable_a murder_n although_o who_o can_v be_v able_a to_o rehearse_v they_o if_o he_o will_v see_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o wickedness_n confess_v themselves_o not_o sufficient_a to_o kill_v they_o that_o come_v run_v together_o to_o punishment_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n for_o so_o a_o certain_a man_n tiberianus_n who_o have_v the_o chief_a do_v of_o thing_n at_o palestine_n report_v to_o traiane_n as_o suidas_n declare_v in_o his_o traiano_n pliny_n a_o heathen_a man_n be_v move_v with_o the_o multitude_n of_o they_o that_o be_v kill_v obtain_v some_o cease_v or_o at_o least_o a_o certain_a moderation_n so_o pitiful_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o christian_n that_o the_o enemy_n have_v compassion_n on_o their_o calamity_n read_v the_o 3_o 4.5.6.7_o book_n of_o eusebius_n where_o almost_o every_o page_n be_v wash_v with_o blood_n it_o be_v no_o mervayle_n that_o the_o saint_n be_v weary_v with_o so_o continual_a slaughter_n do_v ask_v at_o length_n some_o delivery_n so_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o verse_n but_o the_o word_n be_v yet_o to_o be_v make_v clear_a and_o deliver_v from_o the_o slander_n of_o the_o adversary_n from_o whence_o then_o be_v this_o fetch_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o martyr_n lie_v under_o the_o altar_n without_o doubt_n in_o that_o respect_n that_o david_n use_v oft_o as_o in_o psal_n 27.5_o for_o in_o the_o time_n say_v he_o of_o trouble_n he_o will_v hide_v i_o in_o his_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o secret_a place_n of_o his_o pavillon_n shall_v he_o hide_v i_o and_o set_v i_o upon_o a_o rock_n and_o again_o thou_o do_v hide_v they_o in_o a_o privy_a pl●ce_n of_o thy_o presence_n from_o the_o pride_n of_o man_n thou_o keep_v they_o secret_o in_o a_o cottage_n from_o the_o strife_n of_o tongue_n psal_n 31.20_o but_o it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o tabernacle_n both_o according_a to_o the_o part_n and_o according_a to_o the_o whole_a be_v a_o shadow_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o to_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v to_o have_v christ_n alone_o for_o the_o place_n of_o their_o succour_n and_o refuge_n by_o who_o alone_o we_o be_v cover_v and_o defend_v against_o all_o assault_n of_o the_o adversary_n from_o hence_o it_o be_v apparent_a why_o the_o soul_n be_v say_v to_o be_v under_o the_o altar_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o shall_v understand_v first_o from_o thence_o that_o all_o the_o salvation_n also_o of_o the_o martyr_n consist_v in_o the_o alone_a death_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o which_o the_o holy_a champion_n hide_v themselves_o as_o under_o a_o shield_n can_v appear_v safe_o and_o bold_o before_o god_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o merit_v eternal_a life_n to_o themselves_o by_o th●_n shed_v of_o their_o own_o blood_n for_o christ_n his_o sake_n as_o the_o papist_n wicked_o dote_v but_o to_o have_v need_n of_o this_o cover_n without_o which_o otherwise_o they_o can_v stand_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n majesty_n second_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n must_v be_v conformable_a to_o the_o image_n of_o their_o first_o bear_v brother_n rom._n 8.29_o and_o must_v walk_v the_o same_o way_n to_o heaven_n wherein_o he_o have_v go_v before_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o suffer_v of_o trouble_n be_v make_v sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n and_o to_o be_v kill_v with_o many_o anguish_v for_o which_o cause_n paul_n say_v that_o he_o in_o his_o flesh_n for_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v fulfil_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o affliction_n col._n 1.24_o and_o the_o rest_n or_o defect_n he_o call_v conformitye_n and_o not_o satisfaction_n either_o of_o worthiness_n or_o merit_n for_o whatsoever_o remain_v yet_o to_o be_v suffer_v of_o any_o of_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v want_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o the_o affliction_n of_o christ_n who_o judge_v all_o our_o calamity_n his_o own_o these_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o faithful_a who_o have_v place_n alike_o under_o the_o altar_n but_o especial_o to_o the_o martyr_n who_o suffering_n be_v famous_a before_o the_o rest_n for_o which_o cause_n this_o covert_n to_o hide_v in_o be_v attribute_v to_o they_o by_o name_n see_v then_o they_o lie_v under_o the_o altar_n in_o this_o sense_n after_o the_o usual_a speak_n in_o the_o scripture_n how_o wicked_o do_v the_o jesuite_n wrest_v these_o word_n unto_o the_o idolatrous_a custom_n among_o they_o of_o dedicate_a temple_n who_o manner_n be_v to_o bury_v the_o body_n or_o relic_n of_o the_o martyr_n under_o the_o altar_n in_o the_o church_n which_o they_o dedicate_v to_o they_o &_o afterward_o to_o call_v the_o church_n by_o his_o name_n who_o relic_n be_v there_o bury_v as_o though_o more_o respect_n be_v to_o be_v have_v to_o the_o relic_n under_o the_o altar_n then_o of_o he_o who_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v on_o the_o altar_n will_v the_o spirit_n have_v respect_n to_o this_o custom_n whereby_o very_o great_a injury_n be_v do_v both_o to_o christ_n and_o also_o to_o his_o holy_a martyr_n to_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v spoil_v of_o his_o honour_n and_o thrust_v beneath_o his_o servant_n to_o martyr_n because_o they_o be_v make_v robber_n of_o his_o glory_n for_o maintain_v whereof_o they_o shed_v their_o blood_n neither_o be_v the_o jesuite_n content_n to_o abuse_v these_o word_n unto_o the_o defence_n of_o idolatry_n unless_o also_o they_o destroy_v that_o which_o be_v well_o build_v of_o other_o bernard_n in_o his_o three_o sermon_n of_o the_o saint_n teach_v from_o hence_o the_o holy_a soul_n loose_v from_o this_o prison_n of_o the_o body_n not_o forthwith_o to_o enjoy_v perfect_a blessedness_n but_o to_o wait_v for_o full_a happiness_n at_o the_o last_o judgement_n rejoice_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n with_o great_a and_o huge_a comfort_n i_o dispute_v not_o how_o such_o doctrine_n be_v not_o draw_v necessary_o from_o this_o place_n the_o sentence_n seem_v to_o be_v true_a and_o agreeable_a with_o the_o other_o scripture_n for_o so_o david_n speak_v when_o i_o awake_v i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o thy_o image_n psal_n 17.15_o neither_o do_v paul_n expect_v a_o crown_n before_o that_o day_n in_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o all_o that_o have_v love_v the_o bright_a come_n of_o christ_n 2._o tim._n 4.8_o neither_o will_v god_n that_o the_o ancient_a people_n shall_v be_v make_v perfect_a without_o we_o much_o less_o be_v it_o like_v to_o be_v true_a that_o one_o of_o the_o essential_a part_n shall_v attain_v absolute_a happiness_n without_o the_o other_o heb._n 11.40_o they_o that_o will_v more_o bold_o than_o become_v modest_a christian_n that_o the_o separate_a soul_n shall_v have_v a_o clear_a sight_n of_o god_n in_o who_o as_o in_o a_o glass_n they_o behold_v all_o thing_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v what_o reason_n do_v they_o give_v why_o the_o soul_n under_o the_o altar_n not_o content_a with_o this_o sight_n alone_o as_o if_o they_o be_v ignorant_a do_v inquire_v of_o the_o time_n of_o vengeance_n many_o such_o thing_n ought_v to_o have_v restrain_v the_o jesuite_n not_o to_o fight_v against_o a_o true_a sentence_n but_o they_o see_v that_o unless_o they_o shall_v give_v to_o the_o separate_a soul_n full_a happiness_n in_o the_o clear_a behold_v of_o god_n the_o jnvocate_a of_o saint_n will_v be_v overthrow_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n leave_v for_o to_o show_v why_o we_o shall_v implore_v their_o aid_n see_v it_o be_v not_o the_o manner_n before_o christ_n be_v exhibit_v but_o let_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v touch_v in_o a_o word_n their_o crafty_a deal_n ¶_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o most_o constant_o they_o have_v profess_v &_o preach_v as_o ch_z 1.9_o and_o for_o the_o testimony_n which_o they_o maintain_v in_o the_o greek_n which_o they_o have_v peradventure_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o they_o be_v count_v christian_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o other_o as_o 1_o tim._n 3.7_o but_o he_o must_v be_v well_o report_v even_o from_o they_o that_o be_v without_o as_o if_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v belong_v to_o they_o who_o by_o their_o profession_n have_v procure_v to_o themselves_o the_o hatred_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o the_o testimony_n which_o they_o have_v to_o they_o that_o be_v manifest_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o man_n 10_o they_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n hitherto_o the_o first_o member_n which_o have_v open_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o time_n past_a now_o the_o present_a state_n under_o galienus_n be_v show_v by_o a_o cry_n through_o yrkesomnes_n of_o continual_a trouble_n a_o deliverance_n from_o it_o at_o length_n be_v ask_v see_v they_o have_v endure_v
not_o plain_o deliver_v but_o lust_n be_v restreyn_v by_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o ceremony_n &_o rite_n but_o now_o the_o bride_n have_v obtain_v more_o plentiful_a grace_n shall_v remove_v the_o girdle_n from_o the_o loin_n to_o the_o pap_n strait_o tie_v and_o bind_v to_o her_o those_o garment_n by_o a_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o heart_n lest_o be_v loose_v and_o ungirded_a they_o slide_v down_o and_o spread_v abroad_o 14_o and_o his_o head_n and_o hair_n etc._n etc._n the_o garment_n and_o girdle_n be_v common_a to_o all_o memher_n in_o the_o head_n &_o the_o hair_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a distribution_n whereof_o the_o former_a concern_v those_o which_o rule_n in_o the_o christian_a assembly_n and_o be_v to_o they_o as_o head_n the_o hair_n do_v signify_v the_o common_a christian_a people_n which_o depend_v on_o the_o holy_a teacher_n draw_v nourishement_n and_o ornament_n from_o they_o and_o they_o bestow_v again_o on_o they_o deck_v and_o defence_n both_o of_o they_o be_v white_a flourish_v in_o the_o seven_o church_n or_o rather_o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o seven_o church_n by_o a_o singular_a purity_n for_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o this_o order_n of_o the_o member_n have_v reference_n after_o a_o sort_n to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o churchche_n although_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v relate_v here_o in_o the_o last_o place_n in_o the_o epistle_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o first_o which_o reverse_v of_o order_n do_v teach_v that_o those_o property_n be_v in_o such_o sort_n agree_v to_o some_o as_o that_o also_o according_a to_o the_o occasion_n they_o be_v proper_a to_o other_o but_o the_o whiteness_n be_v of_o wool_n &_o snow_n of_o the_o former_a for_o the_o simplicity_n of_o manner_n wherewith_o the_o saint_n be_v endue_v which_o every_o where_o be_v call_v sheep_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n see_v our_o head_n be_v a_o lamb_n of_o the_o latter_a because_o this_o purity_n and_o whiteness_n be_v not_o natural_a but_o borrow_v for_o wool_n by_o nature_n be_v filthy_a in_o greasines_n full_a of_o dust_n &_o many_o other_o defyling_n but_o be_v thorough_o wash_v in_o the_o most_o clear_a fountain_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n it_o exceed_v snow_n itself_o or_o whatsoever_o excel_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o whiteness_n so_o great_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o to_o seek_v righteousness_n not_o in_o ourselves_o but_o in_o another_o that_o the_o spirit_n content_n not_o himself_o with_o one_o similitude_n of_o the_o garment_n but_o also_o adjoin_v the_o similitude_n of_o snow_n and_o many_o other_o reason_n in_o other_o place_n show_v how_o great_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o mind_v this_o doctrine_n &_o that_o on_o every_o side_n it_o shall_v sound_v in_o our_o ear_n ¶_o and_o his_o eye_n as_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n overcome_v darkness_n from_o which_o eye_v no_o darkness_n take_v away_o the_o sight_n which_o kind_n of_o eye_n do_v especial_o shine_v in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o seven_o church_n in_o which_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o truth_n shine_v so_o clear_o that_o no_o craft_n of_o heretic_n can_v darken_v the_o same_o all_o their_o vain_a show_n be_v consume_v as_o stubble_n with_o these_o fiery_a else_o or_o as_o cover_n of_o wax_n they_o do_v melt_v forthwith_o and_o do_v open_o bewray_v their_o hide_a deceit_n 15_o and_o his_o foot_n be_v as_o fine_a shine_a brass_n wherefore_o pass_v he_o so_o quick_o from_o the_o head_n &_o eye_n to_o the_o foot_n especial_o see_v there_o follow_v the_o voice_n hand_n mouth_n and_o face_n it_o be_v not_o rash_o do_v but_o in_o that_o order_n the_o member_n be_v describe_v which_o do_v most_o fit_o agree_v to_o the_o church_n now_o therefore_o he_o teach_v after_o that_o first_o what_o be_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o next_o churchche_n where_o the_o faithful_a be_v foot_n &_o like_v to_o brass_n of_o lebanon_n for_o they_o be_v the_o head_n hair_n &_o eye_n in_o a_o other_o respect_n and_o manner_n one_o member_n can_v not_o declare_v the_o whole_a estate_n of_o the_o bride_n for_o which_o cause_n there_o be_v more_o use_v and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o he_o who_o john_n see_v be_v like_a to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n as_o touch_v lebanon_n brass_n th._n beza_n do_v well_o retain_v the_o greke_n word_n in_o his_o translation_n copper_n be_v manifest_a to_o the_o latin_n neither_o do_v i_o believe_v that_o it_o sufficient_o express_v the_o singular_a elegancy_n of_o this_o brass_n dig_v out_o of_o lebanon_n for_o aretas_n yield_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o this_o word_n and_o we_o know_v that_o a_o possession_n which_o engender_v metal_n befall_v to_o the_o tribe_n of_o asher_n who_o have_v his_o seat_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o this_o mountain_n for_o so_o moses_n speak_v iron_n and_o brass_n shall_v be_v thy_o shoe_n speak_v of_o that_o coast_n where_o this_o tribe_n be_v seat_v deut._n 33.25_o some_o have_v rather_o that_o here_o it_o shall_v have_v the_o signification_n of_o frankincense_n the_o author_n also_o of_o which_o judgement_n be_v aretas_n as_o it_o be_v doubtful_a between_o both_o all_o be_v it_o he_o plain_o relate_v not_o that_o this_o signification_n be_v as_o it_o be_v draw_v from_o use_n or_o take_v out_o of_o any_o approve_a author_n but_o as_o though_o the_o composition_n of_o the_o word_n shall_v signify_v some_o such_o thing_n but_o anthoine_n nebrissensis_n bring_v somewhat_o of_o weight_n for_o this_o point_n write_v as_o it_o be_v record_v of_o francis_n de_fw-fr ribera_n that_o this_o title_n be_v frequent_a in_o orpheus_n amongst_o his_o hymn_n chalcolibanus_n for_o apollo_n for_o latona_n and_o other_o god_n that_o be_v as_o he_o interprete_v the_o male_a frankincense_n or_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o male_a frankincense_n as_o in_o virgile_n in_o his_o bucolickes_n and_o offer_v for_o sacrifice_v the_o fate_n vervin_n and_o male_a frankincense_n but_o i_o think_v that_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v contradict_v it_o burn_v as_o in_o a_o furnace_n similitude_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v fetch_v from_o usual_a &_o accoustumed_a thing_n but_o we_o read_v not_o where_o of_o such_o a_o prodigal_a waist_n of_o frankincense_n no_o not_o when_o alexander_n himself_o sacrifice_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v burn_v in_o a_o oven_n or_o furnace_n which_o only_o be_v to_o be_v burn_v on_o a_o altar_n therefore_o that_o first_o signification_n of_o metal_n seem_v to_o be_v better_o chief_o see_v the_o vision_n already_o before_o make_v be_v according_a to_o this_o manner_n record_v in_o ezechiel_n his_o foot_n be_v like_a to_o shine_a brass_n ch_n 1.17_o of_o shine_a brass_n in_o dan._n ch_z 10.6_o as_o touch_v orpheus_n let_v the_o learned_a consider_v whether_o chalcolibanus_n for_o apollo_n may_v not_o be_v a_o image_n of_o brass_n of_o lebanon_n for_o apollo_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o by_o his_o verse_n do_v as_o it_o be_v erect_v a_o image_n of_o most_o precious_a brass_n for_o apollo_n they_o be_v wont_v in_o ancient_a time_n to_o consecrate_v to_o their_o god_n other_o thing_n beside_o frankincense_n according_a to_o which_o custom_n synesius_n a_o christian_a poet_n name_v his_o hymn_n crown_n &_o garland_n i_o make_v for_o thou_o this_o garland_n from_o the_o holy_a meadow_n hym._n 3._o such_o a_o thing_n therefore_o be_v this_o lebanons_n brass_n who_o foot_n burn_v in_o a_o furnace_n be_v like_a show_v the_o afflict_a spouse_n in_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n &_o pergamum_n which_o yet_o receive_v no_o damage_n by_o affliction_n but_o through_o the_o strength_n of_o brass_n shall_v continue_v invincible_a &_o shall_v shine_v much_o more_o clear_a than_o fire_n the_o common_a latin_a translation_n for_o lebanons_n brass_n read_v copper_n the_o jesuite_n according_a to_o his_o wont_a that_o he_o may_v by_o some_o probable_a reason_n hide_v the_o error_n think_v that_o the_o old_a interpreter_n first_o translate_v it_o lebanon_n brass_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a &_o that_o afterward_o this_o word_n be_v corrupt_v by_o printer_n or_o unlearned_a but_o what_o need_v this_o defence_n wherefore_o have_v not_o the_o translator_n here_o as_o always_o follow_v the_o best_a correct_a copy_n if_o the_o greek_a book_n be_v corrupt_v it_o be_v foolishness_n to_o bring_v a_o thing_n to_o the_o rule_n which_o be_v right_a than_o the_o rule_n itself_o but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o truth_n carry_v the_o man_n that_o gainesay_v it_o from_o his_o judgement_n &_o drive_v he_o into_o contrary_a opinion_n ¶_o and_o his_o voice_n as_o the_o voice_n of_o many_o etc._n etc._n this_o similitude_n be_v often_o &_o for_o the_o most_o part_n note_v a_o huge_a tumult_n in_o this_o book_n as_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v of_o a_o large_a signification_n declare_v beside_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o noise_n a_o certain_a unconceavable_n as_o i_o may_v so_o
restore_v philadelphia_n find_v it_o to_o be_v long_o before_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v perform_v within_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o she_o be_v bear_v again_o she_o shall_v see_v the_o issue_n &_o end_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n as_o the_o prophecy_n follow_v shall_v declare_v with_o god_n his_o help_n ¶_o hold_v that_o which_o thou_o have_v that_o no_o man_n may_v take_v away_o thy_o crown_n go_v on_o courageous_o in_o the_o race_n wherein_o thou_o have_v begin_v keep_v thy_o sanctity_n of_o manner_n purity_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n severity_n of_o heavenly_a discipline_n lest_o if_o thou_o shall_v begin_v to_o relent_v any_o thing_n in_o this_o matter_n a_o other_o take_v thy_o crown_n from_o thou_o but_o what_o crown_n be_v this_o the_o honour_n which_o she_o shall_v receive_v from_o the_o enemy_n bring_v under_o she_o and_o worship_v before_o her_o foot_n ver_fw-la 9_o which_o manner_n of_o reward_n do_v depend_v on_o the_o duty_n of_o godliness_n unto_o which_o they_o be_v propound_v and_o be_v take_v away_o some_o time_n from_o the_o saint_n for_o a_o correction_n of_o their_o cowardliness_n wherefore_o they_o do_v unskilful_o who_o transfer_v these_o thing_n unto_o eternal_a life_n as_o though_o that_o can_v have_v be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o elect_a or_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a as_o though_o they_o shall_v always_o waver_v as_o for_o a_o uncerten_a and_o doubtful_a thing_n of_o which_o they_o can_v have_v no_o sure_a hope_n as_o long_o as_o they_o dwell_v on_o earth_n it_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o always_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o wicked_a may_v deceive_v themselves_o with_o a_o false_a persuasion_n but_o the_o elect_n have_v the_o spirit_n who_o witness_v that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v he_o the_o author_n of_o all_o truth_n either_o deceive_v or_o be_v deceive_v rom._n 8.16_o although_o if_o any_o think_v that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o the_o earthly_a and_o heavenly_a reward_n of_o which_o they_o will_v have_v that_o to_o be_v at_o least_o a_o type_n the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v answer_v true_o and_o right_o which_o we_o have_v say_v before_o touch_v the_o book_n of_o life_n ver_fw-la 5._o that_o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o choose_v now_o the_o crown_n may_v be_v take_v away_o from_o they_o that_o be_v call_v not_o persevere_v the_o which_o for_o a_o time_n they_o do_v hope_n for_o in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v call_v not_o without_o cause_n their_o crown_n but_o how_o do_v they_o trifle_n who_o wrest_v unto_o the_o elect_a that_o which_o pertain_v to_o the_o call_v only_o because_o they_o invy_v that_o other_o shall_v have_v that_o certainty_n or_o asseurance_n of_o salvation_n which_o themselves_o feel_v not_o as_o touch_v the_o word_n take_v it_o be_v here_o the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o mat._n 5.40_o and_o take_v thy_o coat_n that_o be_v take_v away_o 12_o he_o that_o shall_v overcome_v i_o will_v make_v a_o pillar_n word_n for_o word_n in_o the_o greek_n he_o that_o shall_v overcome_v i_o will_v make_v he_o for_o the_o overcome_a i_o will_v make_v or_o as_o touch_v the_o overcomer_n i_o will_v make_v he_o a_o hebraisme_n of_o the_o nominative_a case_n absolute_a such_o as_o we_o have_v observe_v in_o the_o chap._n 2.26_o the_o reward_n be_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v like_o a_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v abide_v firm_a &_o stable_a in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n neither_o shall_v he_o fear_v any_o ruin_n or_o fall_v in_o what_o manner_n soever_o the_o rain_n shall_v fall_v the_o flood_n shall_v come_v and_o the_o wind_n shall_v blow_v &_o all_o thing_n at_o one_o brunt_n shall_v fall_v upon_o it_o he_o allude_v unto_o those_o two_o brazen_a pillar_n place_v in_o the_o temple_n by_o solomon_n which_o do_v figure_n out_o the_o stability_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n 1_o king_n 7.15_o and_o so_o be_v this_o church_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n not_o defile_v with_o schism_n and_o foul_a apostasy_n as_o late_o we_o have_v see_v the_o sarden_n church_n which_o take_v no_o care_n of_o a_o full_a reformation_n by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n lose_v many_o cityzen_n lose_v they_o as_o a_o fig_n tree_n her_o unripe_a fig_n so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v a_o pillar_n philad●lphia_n shall_v be_v free_a of_o this_o sorrow_n not_o because_o she_o shall_v see_v some_o apostate_n who_o shall_v fain_v godliness_n for_o a_o time_n but_o because_o those_o few_o shall_v more_o commend_v her_o faithfulness_n in_o try_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o hypocrite_n then_o cast_v upon_o she_o any_o blot_n of_o schism_n and_o defection_n ¶_o neither_o shall_v he_o go_v out_o any_o more_o the_o pillar_n be_v declare_v by_o a_o double_a property_n one_o of_o continuance_n a_o other_o of_o a_o name_n write_v upon_o the_o first_o be_v signify_v in_o these_o word_n and_o he_o shall_v go_v out_o no_o more_o the_o force_n of_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v this_o that_o they_o may_v meet_v with_o a_o secret_a doubt_n which_o peradventure_o may_v trouble_v some_o body_n mind_n because_o when_o the_o city_n be_v take_v by_o nabuchadnezzar_n those_o pillar_n be_v break_v and_o the_o brass_n of_o they_o be_v carry_v to_o babylon_n jer._n 52.17_o lest_o any_o shall_v fear_v that_o the_o same_o shall_v befall_v he_o namely_o that_o although_o for_o a_o time_n he_o shall_v be_v place_v in_o the_o temple_n yet_o at_o length_n he_o shall_v be_v banish_v away_o he_o bid_v they_o to_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n for_o he_o promise_v that_o this_o pillar_n shall_v be_v such_o as_o no_o nabuchadnezzar_n shall_v ever_o break_v in_o peace_n neither_o ever_o carry_v away_o by_o any_o force_n the_o son_n abide_v in_o the_o house_n for_o ever_o joh._n 8.35_o the_o bond_n woman_n with_o her_o son_n it_v cast_v out_o but_o the_o heir_n shall_v live_v always_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o father_n gal._n 4.30_o and_o c._n ¶_o and_o i_o will_v write_v upon_o he_o the_o name_n of_o my_o god_n the_o name_n write_v be_v three_o fold_n of_o god_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o a_o new_a name_n of_o son_n all_o which_o be_v speak_v according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n the_o figure_n whereof_o the_o spirit_n here_o declare_v point_v unto_o it_o as_o with_o the_o finger_n by_o the_o same_o thing_n teach_v by_o the_o way_n that_o nothing_o be_v ordain_v there_o in_o vain_a although_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v of_o never_o so_o small_a moment_n solomon_n adorn_v the_o two_o erect_a pillar_n with_o two_o name_n the_o one_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n he_o call_v jacin_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v establish_v that_o on_o the_o left_a hand_n boaz_n that_o be_v in_o he_o be_v strength_n 1_o king_n 7.21_o not_o only_o show_v by_o the_o matter_n itself_o of_o the_o pillar_n but_o also_o by_o the_o name_n in_o what_o firm_a estate_n the_o elect_a do_v stand_v before_o god_n both_o present_a and_o future_a for_o the_o present_a the_o child_n of_o god_n have_v strength_n in_o themselves_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v god_n will_v so_o establish_v they_o by_o his_o grace_n that_o they_o can_v never_o fall_v away_o from_o he_o altogether_o although_o that_o i_o may_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n also_o of_o this_o further_a that_o they_o seem_v to_o signify_v the_o two_o church_n by_o that_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n jacin_n the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o god_n at_o length_n in_o his_o time_n shall_v establish_v have_v not_o yet_o get_v stableness_n because_o of_o their_o harneded_a heart_n whereby_o they_o shall_v refuse_v christ_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v by_o that_o on_o the_o left_a hand_n bohaz_n the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n because_o of_o the_o present_a strength_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o it_o when_o she_o shall_v embrabce_v christ_n at_o the_o first_o hear_v so_o christ_n will_v write_v name_n upon_o those_o pillar_n better_a than_o those_o jacin_n &_o bohaz_n for_o first_o he_o will_v imprint_v the_o name_n of_o his_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v manifest_v to_o all_o man_n that_o they_o have_v be_v set_v at_o liberty_n to_o be_v god_n chief_a treasure_n and_o riches_n as_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o thing_n mark_v open_o which_o do_v show_v by_o their_o title_n to_o every_o one_o that_o look_v on_o they_o who_o they_o be_v in_o which_o sense_n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 9_o ver_fw-la and_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o have_v love_v thou_o in_o which_o respect_n also_o holiness_n to_o the_o lord_n be_v write_v upon_o the_o bell_n of_o the_o horse_n in_o zachary_n 14.20_o the_o second_o name_n be_v of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n of_o which_o in_o ch_z 21.2_o to_o
and_o elias_n who_o be_v yet_o you_o say_v alive_a and_o do_v live_v for_o this_o that_o they_o may_v set_v themselves_o against_o antichrist_n when_o he_o come_v and_o keep_v the_o elect_a in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o at_o length_n convert_v the_o jew_n which_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v certain_a be_v not_o yet_o fulfil_v in_o this_o cause_n you_o deal_v by_o three_o argument_n first_o from_o the_o scripture_n second_o from_o father_n three_o from_o reason_n the_o scripture_n you_o bring_v be_v four_o malach._n 4.5.6_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 48.9.10_o and_o chap._n 44.16_o mat._n 17.11_o apoc._n 17.11_o as_o touch_v malachy_n his_o word_n be_v behold_v i_o will_v send_v you_o elias_n the_o prophet_n before_o that_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v and_o he_o shall_v turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n unto_o the_o child_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o child_n unto_o their_o father_n which_o can_v you_o say_v be_v understand_v of_o any_o doctor_n whosoever_o as_o of_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la &_o the_o like_a for_o malachi_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v convert_v by_o elias_n and_o for_o the_o jew_n he_o shall_v chief_o be_v send_v as_o appear_v by_o those_o word_n i_o will_v send_v to_o you_o and_o in_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la to_o restore_v the_o tribe_n of_o jakob_n but_o luther_n and_o zwinglius_fw-la convert_v none_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o neither_o can_v they_o be_v understand_v of_o john_n babptist_n literal_o but_o only_o of_o elias_n i_o answer_v first_o here_o be_v no_o word_n of_o henoch_n who_o conjoin_v come_v be_v propound_v also_o second_o no_o mention_n neither_o be_v here_o of_o antichrist_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v together_o with_o he_o that_o whole_o depend_v on_o a_o false_a supposition_n of_o which_o we_o will_v speak_v in_o due_a place_n this_o therefore_o be_v a_o notable_a demonstration_n that_o propound_v to_o itself_o the_o come_v of_o three_o be_v altogether_o silent_a of_o two_o of_o they_o but_o let_v we_o discuss_v he_o who_o it_o speak_v of_o the_o prophecy_n you_o say_v can_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o luther_n and_o zwinglius_fw-la and_o the_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o gentile_n church_n which_o i_o also_o ready_o acknowledge_v for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o to_o perteyn_a unto_o we_o which_o be_v gentile_n but_o why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v expound_v of_o the_o jew_n because_o it_o agree_v not_o you_o say_v unto_o john_n the_o baptist_n which_o be_v as_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v either_o it_o be_v to_o be_v expound_v of_o the_o baptist_n or_o of_o none_o which_o maim_v and_o unnecessary_a disjunction_n no_o adversary_n can_v grant_v unto_o you_o but_o to_o pardon_v you_o also_o this_o three_o trespass_n why_o perteyn_n it_o not_o i_o pray_v you_o unto_o the_o baptist_n because_o say_v you_o malachi_n speak_v of_o our_o lord_n second_o come_v which_o shall_v be_v for_o to_o judge_v i_o answer_v if_o we_o grant_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o second_o come_v may_v he_o not_o withal_o speak_v also_o of_o the_o first_o most_o certain_a verily_a it_o be_v that_o malachi_n do_v so_o for_o he_o speak_v general_o of_o the_o lord_n come_v which_o comprehend_v as_o well_o the_o first_o as_o the_o second_o and_o whereas_o yourself_o confess_v it_o of_o the_o second_o neither_o do_v i_o deny_v it_o of_o the_o first_o we_o have_v christ_n interpret_n the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o baptist_n this_o be_v elias_n that_o shall_v come_v mat._n 11.14_o see_v therefore_o the_o word_n be_v so_o behold_v now_o how_o i_o fetch_v from_o hence_o a_o true_a interpretation_n against_o that_o literal_a of_o elias_n he_o that_o speak_v in_o the_o same_o word_n of_o two_o time_n he_o as_o he_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o one_o time_n so_o be_v he_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o other_o but_o malachy_n speak_v of_o a_o twofold_a come_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o the_o first_o he_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v figurative_o for_o so_o christ_n interprete_v it_o say_v that_o the_o baptist_n be_v the_o elias_n that_o be_v to_o come_v therefore_o he_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v also_o figurative_o of_o the_o second_o and_o such_o a_o elias_n be_v to_o be_v look_v for_o as_o the_o baptist_n be_v before_o the_o first_o come_v but_o whither_o he_o shall_v be_v one_o singular_a man_n or_o no_o be_v not_o so_o evident_a it_o may_v be_v there_o shall_v be_v one_o chief_a and_o excel_v among_o the_o rest_n although_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o prophet_n when_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o gather_v his_o reject_a people_n shall_v be_v so_o furnish_v with_o the_o plentiful_a gift_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o for_o the_o notable_a godliness_n and_o zele_n wherewith_o every_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v inflame_v elias_n may_v well_o seem_v to_o be_v alive_a again_o in_o every_o one_o for_o these_o abide_a watchman_n on_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n jerusalem_n all_o the_o day_n and_o all_o the_o night_n continual_o shall_v not_o hold_v their_o peace_n neither_o shall_v they_o that_o make_v mention_n of_o jehovah_n keep_v silence_n nor_o suffer_v silence_n to_o be_v of_o he_o as_o say_v esaias_n chap._n 62_o 8.9_o sure_o these_o new_a preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v burn_v with_o so_o great_a a_o desire_n of_o godliness_n that_o as_o consecrate_v themselves_o whole_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n they_o will_v do_v this_o one_o thing_n only_o nothing_o at_o all_o esteem_v in_o respect_n hereof_o even_o the_o necessary_a regard_n of_o their_o body_n by_o sleep_n and_o rest_n and_o what_o a_o fervency_n shall_v there_o be_v in_o the_o minister_n when_o among_o the_o common_a people_n a_o father_n &_o mother_n which_o have_v beget_v a_o son_n shall_v strike_v he_o through_o when_o he_o be_v find_v a_o false_a prophet_n zach._n 13.2.3_o but_o whither_o this_o elias_n shall_v be_v one_o singular_a man_n or_o more_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v elias_n proper_o but_o so_o as_o the_o baptist_n be_v as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o necessary_a reason_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v but_o you_o insist_v and_o contend_v that_o this_o come_n in_o malachi_n be_v the_o second_o only_a although_o the_o interpretation_n of_o our_o lord_n ought_v to_o have_v stop_v your_o mouth_n for_o so_o say_v you_o malachi_n say_v before_o the_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v for_o his_o first_o come_v be_v not_o call_v a_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n but_o a_o acceptable_a time_n and_o day_n of_o salvation_n whereupon_o also_o there_o be_v add_v least_o come_v i_o smite_v the_o earth_n with_o curse_v but_o in_o his_o first_o come_v our_o lord_n come_v not_o to_o judge_v but_o to_o be_v judge_v nor_o to_o destroy_v but_o to_o save_v i_o answer_v you_o have_v bring_v nothing_o which_o necessary_o prove_v it_o the_o second_o come_v only_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o you_o mention_v the_o jew_n and_o disciple_n know_v also_o who_o nevertheless_o do_v then_o look_v for_o elias_n before_o our_o lord_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o hereunto_o perteyn_v that_o question_n when_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v mention_n of_o this_o matter_n why_o then_o say_v the_o scribe_n that_o elias_n must_v first_o come_v mat._n 17.9_o and_o as_o for_o the_o great_a and_o terrible_a day_n why_o do_v it_o not_o agree_v unto_o his_o first_o come_v loe_o say_v malachy_n the_o lord_n shall_v come_v speedy_o into_o his_o temple_n and_o who_o shall_v abide_v the_o day_n of_o his_o come_n and_o who_o shall_v endure_v when_o he_o appear_v for_o he_o be_v like_o a_o fine_a fire_n and_o like_a fuller_n soap_n malach._n 3.1.2_o etc._n etc._n and_o these_o thing_n be_v speak_v of_o his_o first_o come_v and_o be_v not_o that_o day_n terrible_a wherein_o the_o axe_n be_v lay_v to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n and_o they_o that_o be_v unfruitful_a be_v cut_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n how_o fearful_a be_v it_o to_o have_v among_o they_o he_o who_o famn_n be_v in_o his_o hand_n who_o will_v purge_v his_o floor_n &_o gather_v his_o wheat_n into_o the_o barn_n and_o burn_v the_o chaff_n with_o unquenchable_a fire_n mat._n 3.10.12_o but_o he_o come_v not_o to_o judge_v but_o to_o be_v judge_v he_o come_v not_o indeed_o to_o judge_v solemn_o in_o a_o tribunal_n seat_n as_o he_o shall_v do_v at_o length_n in_o the_o last_o judgement_n yet_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n the_o father_n have_v give_v all_o judgement_n to_o he_o john_n 5.22_o which_o he_o both_o exercise_v of_o old_a and_o daily_o now_o exercise_v upon_o all_o contemner_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o jew_n that_o crucify_v he_o upon_o who_o even_o to_o this_o day_n abide_v the_o long_a and_o
there_o be_v a_o certain_a chief_a and_o famous_a woman_n a_o idolatrice_n sorceress_n &_o harlot_n like_o the_o ancient_a jezabell_n which_o be_v the_o wife_n of_o ahab_n yet_o by_o thus_o much_o more_o furnish_v to_o destroy_v because_o this_o show_v herself_o open_o a_o enemy_n and_o adversary_n to_o the_o truth_n that_o will_v be_v account_v for_o a_o prophetisse_n from_o that_o which_o follow_v appear_v that_o she_o be_v teach_v to_o the_o naughtiness_n in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n of_o which_o she_o become_v a_o school_n mistress_n teach_v other_o the_o same_o rule_n for_o the_o heretic_n abuse_v the_o labour_n of_o woman_n to_o sparse_v abroad_o their_o poison_n simon_n magus_n have_v his_o helena_n carpocrates_n his_o marcellinam_n apelles_n his_o philumenam_fw-la montanus_n after_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n in_o place_n nigh_o to_o this_o thyatira_n his_o priscilla_n &_o maximilla_n in_o the_o antitype_n the_o thing_n be_v clear_a for_o this_o jezabell_n be_v rome_n queen_n idolatrice_n sorceress_n whore_n killer_n of_o martyr_n prophetisse_n the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n and_o the_o whole_a way_n of_o salvation_n which_o never_o yield_v to_o any_o heresye_n and_o many_o such_o like_a with_o which_o we_o shall_v see_v she_o adorn_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n partly_o in_o this_o book_n partly_o she_o boast_o set_v forth_o herself_o impudent_o late_o we_o learn_v tha_z the_o pope_n be_v signify_v by_o balaam_n now_o we_o have_v the_o city_n show_v by_o jezabell_n both_o which_o perteine_a to_o the_o describe_v of_o the_o same_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n see_v in_o the_o bishop_n and_o city_n be_v thing_n very_o near_o conjoin_v and_o how_o do_v it_o fit_a the_o time_n that_o the_o spirit_n do_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n now_o such_o a_o city_n how_o long_a time_n do_v the_o pope_n deceive_v under_o a_o show_n of_o godliness_n as_o the_o hypocritical_a balaam_n in_o the_o former_a age_n about_o the_o begin_n of_o increase_a honour_n and_o reputation_n but_o after_o he_o be_v grow_v to_o a_o inmeasurable_a greatness_n lift_v up_o above_o king_n &_o emperor_n so_o as_o now_o all_o man_n quake_v at_o the_o very_a name_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n his_o rome_n become_v the_o queen_n jezabell_n a_o impudent_a and_o paint_a whore_n balaam_n therefore_o and_o jezabell_n declare_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o impiety_n only_o they_o be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o increase_n a_o time_n rome_n in_o her_o infancy_n as_o balaam_n handle_v her_o matter_n more_o wary_o and_o secret_o she_o pretend_v that_o she_o can_v not_o speak_v but_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n shall_v put_v in_o her_o mouth_n be_v grow_v to_o full_a age_n as_o the_o prophetisse_n jezabell_n preach_v open_o that_o she_o can_v err_v and_o that_o she_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o all_o godliness_n that_o abuse_v the_o labour_n of_o king_n to_o bring_v in_o and_o set_v up_o idolatry_n this_o by_o she_o own_o authority_n command_v to_o commit_v fornication_n and_o to_o eat_v thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n in_o exact_v the_o worship_v of_o idol_n &_o image_n who_o can_v admire_v enough_o the_o singular_a art_n of_o the_o spirit_n who_o have_v so_o lively_o set_v forth_o this_o matter_n this_o then_o be_v jezabell_n the_o holy_a man_n of_o this_o time_n shake_v too_o soft_o &_o modest_o this_o peste_n have_v therein_o so_o much_o the_o less_o approve_v themselves_o to_o christ_n our_o head_n who_o will_v have_v no_o earnestness_n spare_v in_o repress_v so_o great_a impudence_n learned_a man_n have_v deal_v some_o what_o more_o bold_o and_o free_o than_o they_o have_v do_v in_o former_a time_n yet_o they_o use_v not_o that_o earnestness_n that_o be_v meet_v in_o a_o cause_n of_o this_o sort_n ¶_o and_o i_o give_v her_o time_n to_o repent_v in_o these_o word_n be_v show_v the_o stubburne_n of_o jezabell_n christ_n deal_v some_o while_n patient_o with_o that_o impure_a thyatiren_n woman_n so_o also_o with_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o stormy_a trouble_n of_o barbarian_n be_v quiet_v and_o the_o longobarde_n be_v overthrow_v nevertheless_o this_o peace_n bring_v no_o amendment_n but_o increase_v rather_o the_o apostasy_n while_o they_o come_v to_o this_o height_n of_o impudent_a jezabell_n for_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o after_o those_o time_n all_o ungodliness_n do_v grow_v the_o papist_n strive_v to_o oppress_v the_o former_a dimness_n with_o infernal_a darkness_n 22_o behold_v i_o will_v cast_v she_o in_o a_o bed_n the_o punishment_n of_o jezabell_n the_o bed_n be_v sometime_o to_o delight_n and_o riot_n as_o in_o the_o prophet_n sit_v down_o on_o bed_n of_o ivory_n and_o abound_v upon_o their_o head_n amos_n 6.4_o sometime_o to_o sickness_n and_o weakness_n as_o the_o lord_n will_v uphold_v bim_n on_o the_o bed_n of_o feebleness_n and_o turn_v all_o his_o bed_n in_o his_o sickness_n psal_n 41.4_o of_o which_o in_o this_o place_n not_o of_o delight_n although_o this_o be_v a_o great_a punishment_n to_o be_v give_v up_o to_o the_o occasion_n of_o sin_v but_o of_o grief_n as_o appear_v from_o this_o that_o by_o and_o by_o after_o follow_v where_o they_o that_o commit_v adultery_n with_o she_o shall_v be_v cast_v into_o great_a affliction_n therefore_o the_o thyati●en_a woman_n have_v languish_v rome_n also_o have_v be_v sick_a since_o the_o year_n 1300_o consume_a more_o every_o day_n as_o be_v sick_a of_o a_o consumption_n for_o since_o that_o time_n paleness_n have_v cover_v her_o face_n her_o stomach_n be_v grow_v weak_a her_o soul_n be_v become_v heavy_a &_o her_o flesh_n consume_v yea_o her_o infirmity_n have_v grow_v so_o far_o that_o if_o thou_o behold_v she_o at_o this_o day_n thou_o will_v say_v that_o she_o be_v a_o dry_a carcase_n in_o respect_n of_o her_o former_a plight_n and_o good_a like_n o_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o god_n which_o even_o in_o one_o word_n have_v give_v so_o lively_a image_n and_o picture_n of_o a_o time_n so_o far_o of_o can_v the_o languish_a destruction_n of_o rome_n be_v note_v out_o more_o elegant_o and_o evident_o god_n will_v not_o have_v she_o perish_v on_o a_o swift_a or_o speedy_a disease_n that_o the_o people_n shall_v not_o forget_v she_o but_o with_o a_o waste_a consumption_n to_o be_v corrupt_v and_o wax_v rot_v both_o to_o the_o end_n that_o her_o linger_a punishment_n shall_v be_v a_o image_n of_o the_o eternal_a pain_n and_o also_o that_o she_o may_v be_v a_o spectacle_n to_o many_o age_n who_o she_o have_v lead_v in_o error_n so_o long_o a_o time_n certain_o unless_o rome_n do_v feel_v and_o acknowledge_v this_o her_o consumption_n she_o must_v needs_o be_v sick_a not_o only_o of_o a_o consumption_n but_o also_o of_o a_o phrenesy_n ¶_o and_o those_o that_o commit_v adultery_n with_o she_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o adulterer_n who_o be_v the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o be_v after_o in_o the_o 17._o chap._n 2._o unless_o these_o shall_v forsake_v the_o whore_n they_o shall_v feel_v great_a affliction_n have_v not_o yet_o the_o king_n learn_v this_o sufficient_o by_o experience_n the_o most_o fierce_a and_o savage_a turk_n on_o the_o one_o side_n vex_v the_o emperor_n the_o spaniard_n on_o the_o other_o side_n remember_v the_o age_n past_a since_o the_o year_n one_o thou_o sand_n and_o three_o hundred_o in_o which_o jezabell_n begin_v to_o languish_v who_o can_v attain_v to_o declare_v the_o great_a evil_n which_o transilvanie_n polen_n boheme_n the_o house_n of_o austriche_n the_o emperor_n the_o venetian_n the_o spaniard_n have_v suffer_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o this_o barbarous_a turk_n do_v not_o this_o your_o affliction_n begin_v at_o the_o same_o time_n wherein_o jezabell_n rome_n be_v cast_v into_o this_o her_o sick_a bed_n why_o do_v you_o not_o observe_v that_o your_o adultery_n which_o this_o whore_n have_v bring_v forth_o and_o cause_v all_o these_o evil_n unto_o you_o but_o this_o calamity_n hitherto_o while_o jezabell_n lie_v sick_a in_o bed_n be_v nothing_o to_o that_o wherewith_o at_o length_n you_o shall_v be_v punish_v unless_o you_o renounce_v betimes_o her_o ungodly_a commerce_n and_o society_n when_o she_o shall_v yield_v her_o last_o breathe_n as_o we_o shall_v show_v afterwards_o be_v it_o then_o now_o time_n o_o you_o prince_n and_o peer_n to_o fly_v like_o coward_n from_o the_o true_a god_n unto_o the_o whore_n of_o rome_n they_o have_v no_o pardon_n or_o excuse_v who_o bewitch_v with_o her_o beauty_n while_o she_o flourish_v company_v with_o she_o what_o torment_n await_v your_o wretched_a lust_n who_o do_v now_o embrace_v a_o stink_a carcase_n for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n provide_v for_o yourselves_o in_o forsake_v with_o all_o speed_n this_o harlot_n least_o sudden_o at_o length_n you_o be_v overwhelm_v when_o your_o repentance_n shall_v be_v too_o late_a both_o with_o the_o most_o
by_o threaten_v of_o his_o unexpected_a come_n ver_fw-la 3._o after_o he_o praise_v some_o for_o their_o pure_a garment_n which_o praise_n contain_v the_o reward_n both_o proper_a to_o they_o and_o also_o common_a to_o all_o conqueror_n ver_fw-la 5._o which_o be_v threefold_a white_a clothing_n a_o permanent_a name_n in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o his_o profess_v of_o he_o before_o his_o father_n and_o the_o angel_n all_o which_o be_v conclude_v with_o the_o usual_a epiphoneme_n ver_fw-la 6._o scholion_n 1_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v at_o sardis_n ca●_n hy●_n ca●_n sardis_n be_v the_o second_o of_o the_o church_n rise_v again_o go_v yet_o further_o in_o the_o south_n and_o grow_v in_o a_o more_o ample_a light_n of_o truth_n the_o antitype_n be_v the_o first_o reform_v church_n begin_v of_o god_n by_o martin_n luther_n of_o wittenberg_n a_o town_n of_o saxe_n upon_o the_o river_n albe_n in_o the_o year_n 1517_o when_o that_o holy_a man_n oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o roman_a questor_n sell_v for_o money_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o people_n the_o truth_n begin_v to_o be_v revive_v under_o the_o thyatiren_n state_n but_o no_o reformation_n follow_v this_o be_v first_o undertake_v at_o the_o time_n which_o i_o have_v say_v for_o which_o cause_n we_o shall_v find_v no_o mention_n in_o these_o three_o church_n of_o this_o chapter_n either_o of_o balaam_n or_o jezabell_n for_o they_o be_v pure_a from_o the_o fault_n of_o this_o whore_n who_o fellowship_n they_o renounce_v utter_o but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o see_v the_o same_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v of_o all_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n but_o a_o threefold_a difference_n will_v be_v find_v in_o they_o in_o like_a manner_n they_o be_v shadow_v out_o by_o three_o city_n according_a to_o the_o beginning_n and_o condition_n of_o every_o one_o the_o first_o after_o the_o impudence_n of_o jezabell_n restrain_v be_v sardis_n and_o the_o first_o after_o the_o roman_a impudence_n weaken_v be_v the_o german_a church_n of_o that_o time_n which_o even_o now_o i_o have_v set_v down_o only_o the_o indifferent_a and_o good_a reader_n be_v to_o be_v entreat_v that_o they_o do_v not_o think_v i_o to_o descend_v to_o this_o or_o that_o interpretation_n by_o any_o ill_a will_n but_o in_o good_a faithfulness_n to_o follow_v that_o sense_n which_o the_o print_a step_n of_o the_o spirit_n go_v before_o seem_v to_o i_o not_o dark_o to_o point_v at_o i_o know_v how_o fearful_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v even_o to_o hurt_v the_o estimation_n of_o any_o brother_n with_o wrongful_a suspicion_n how_o much_o more_o heinous_a a_o sin_n it_o shall_v be_v to_o cast_v any_o blot_n rash_o upon_o any_o whole_a church_n and_o certain_o as_o in_o all_o my_o life_n i_o desire_v to_o put_v far_o away_o all_o virulency_n of_o tongue_n so_o especial_o i_o have_v think_v always_o that_o i_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o i_o make_v not_o the_o name_n of_o god_n a_o cloak_n for_o my_o lust_n let_v not_o then_o the_o office_n of_o a_o interpreter_n be_v any_o fraud_n to_o i_o speak_v either_o here_o or_o in_o other_o place_n of_o thing_n present_v otherwise_o peradventure_o they_o many_o either_o will_v or_o expect_v it_o be_v a_o impious_a and_o detestable_a thing_n to_o play_v the_o huckster_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o speak_v rather_o according_a to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o man_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o therefore_o all_o as_o well_o hatred_n as_o favour_v set_v aside_o if_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o that_o which_o be_v utter_v agree_v with_o the_o truth_n let_v we_o quake_v rather_o at_o the_o threaten_n of_o the_o most_o just_a god_n then_o be_v angry_a with_o he_o who_o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v oppress_v unwares_o with_o the_o evil_n hang_v over_o our_o head_n have_v endeavour_v to_o his_o utmost_a power_n to_o reveal_v the_o hide_a truth_n which_o i_o hope_v i_o shall_v obtain_v easy_o of_o all_o the_o godly_a so_o far_o shall_v it_o be_v from_o they_o to_o reprehend_v my_o industry_n with_o which_o hope_v support_v i_o will_v proceed_v to_o my_o purpose_n through_o god_n help_n ¶_o these_o thing_n faith_n he_o that_o have_v those_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n &_o those_o serven_n star_n in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o sender_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o those_o spirit_n which_o be_v rehearse_v there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n they_o be_v fetch_v from_o the_o common_a inscription_n of_o the_o epistle_n in_o the_o 1_o chap._n ver_fw-la 4._o they_o be_v seven_o for_o the_o abondance_n of_o all_o gift_n which_o that_o number_n usual_o signifi_v christ_n have_v in_o his_o own_o power_n that_o be_v the_o keeper_n of_o the_o storehouse_n of_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n he_o bestow_v the_o spirit_n on_o who_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a whereupon_o he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v send_v the_o conforter_n from_o the_o father_n john_n 15.26_o who_o shall_v receive_v from_o christ_n and_o show_v unto_o we_o io._n 16.14_o the_o star_n be_v in_o the_o right_a hand_n chap._n 1.16_o likewise_o in_o the_o ephesine_fw-la church_n wherein_o we_o have_v hear_v be_v declare_v the_o safety_n of_o the_o minister_n who_o christ_n carry_v in_o his_o hand_n chap_n 2.1_o to_o what_o end_n then_o be_v this_o repeat_v a_o fresh_a be_v there_o want_v now_o any_o other_o honour_n spend_v whole_o on_o the_o former_a in_o no_o wise_a but_o only_o because_o the_o conveniency_n of_o thing_n and_o not_o any_o vain_a novelty_n be_v seek_v because_o sardis_n shall_v find_v the_o same_o safeguard_n of_o christ_n in_o defend_v her_o pastor_n which_o he_o have_v show_v in_o ephesus_n not_o without_o cause_n do_v he_o use_v the_o same_o similitude_n wherein_o there_o be_v so_o great_a conjunction_n of_o thing_n but_o of_o sardis_n the_o history_n speak_v not_o a_o word_n which_o thing_n in_o her_o antitype_n be_v most_o clear_a for_o he_o that_o give_v the_o spirit_n plentiful_o to_o who_o and_o when_o he_o will_v shed_v out_o in_o those_o time_n so_o great_a plenty_n of_o all_o gift_n as_o no_o where_n else_o in_o these_o last_o time_n good_a learning_n have_v be_v already_o as_o bury_v be_v drive_v away_o for_o many_o age_n by_o the_o rusticity_n of_o the_o scholastiques_n until_o at_o length_n after_o the_o wonderful_a art_n of_o print_v be_v find_v out_o which_o cunning_a flow_v from_o the_o same_o fountain_n of_o the_o spirit_n many_o excellent_a wit_n be_v raise_v up_o to_o search_v out_o the_o truth_n among_o which_o be_v john_n picus_n mirandulanus_n angelus_n politianus_n platina_n trapezuntius_fw-la gaza_n hermolaus_n barbarus_fw-la marsilius_n ficinus_fw-la pyrbachius_n joannes_n de_fw-fr monte_fw-fr regio_fw-la aldus_fw-la manutius_n rodolphus_n agricola_n joannes_n jovianus_n pontanus_n philippus_n beroaldus_n joannes_n reuchlinus_n and_o many_o other_o most_o learned_a man_n who_o chief_a labour_n be_v in_o set_v forth_o the_o tongue_n art_n and_o other_o humane_a learning_n but_o how_o great_a a_o entrance_n be_v make_v from_o hence_o to_o find_v out_o the_o mystery_n of_o salvati●●_n the_o conjoin_a time_n have_v teach_v for_o by_o and_o by_o after_o come_v martin_n luther_n philippe_n melanthon_n erasme_n of_o roterodam_n zuinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n capito_n blaurerus_n bucer_n musculus_fw-la calvin_n and_o many_o other_o most_o learned_a man_n so_o many_o light_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n who_o be_v holpen_v by_o the_o study_n of_o those_o former_a bring_v forth_o again_o the_o truth_n cover_v with_o long_a filthiness_n and_o uncleanness_n dissipate_v the_o romish_a darkness_n and_o dispel_v utter_o as_o smoke_v hither_o and_o thither_o all_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o enemy_n do_v not_o christ_n worthy_o take_v upon_o himself_o this_o ensign_n of_o the_o seven_o spirit_n enrich_v this_o time_n with_o so_o great_a plenty_n of_o gift_n neither_o be_v less_o famous_a his_o power_n &_o grace_n in_o conserve_n safety_n to_o the_o pastor_n who_o will_v not_o have_v think_v that_o luther_n in_o so_o great_a hatred_n and_o envy_n of_o all_o man_n for_o who_o almost_o the_o whole_a world_n lay_v wait_v even_o also_o he_o under_o who_o foot_n the_o emperor_n once_o be_v compel_v to_o subject_v their_o neck_n that_o luther_n i_o say_v shall_v have_v dye_v a_o thousand_o death_n but_o peradventure_o trouble_v be_v raise_v up_o he_o do_v scarce_o endure_v yes_o by_o the_o space_n almost_o of_o thirty_o year_n he_o abide_v in_o the_o battle_n safe_a even_o from_o privy_a assault_n with_o which_o the_o pope_n be_v wont_a to_o make_v away_o those_o man_n who_o he_o can_v conquer_v with_o open_a war_n and_o force_n and_o at_o length_n lie_v sick_a in_o his_o bed_n and_o give_v up_o his_o soul_n to_o he_o that_o give_v it_o he_o sleep_v quiet_o
together_o to_o break_v open_a violent_o the_o house_n of_o the_o calvinist_n or_o the_o savage_a cruelty_n of_o the_o dressenses_n against_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o jac._n lassius_fw-la to_o which_o they_o deny_v a_o grave_n among_o the_o wicked_a because_o be_v alive_a he_o be_v a_o lover_n of_o the_o pure_a truth_n i_o recite_v these_o few_o against_o my_o will_n &_o i_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o mention_v they_o but_o that_o the_o brethren_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o commit_v they_o but_o how_o much_o better_o be_v it_o for_o you_o to_o hear_v these_o thing_n of_o your_o friend_n they_o of_o your_o enemy_n these_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v do_v exaggerate_v with_o word_n your_o evil_a act_n unto_o your_o perpetual_a shame_n &_o of_o all_o religion_n i_o do_v only_o show_v the_o congruency_n of_o the_o prophecy_n that_o see_v in_o what_o account_n you_o be_v with_o god_n you_o may_v think_v earnest_o of_o reform_v the_o error_n &_o make_v peace_n with_o the_o brethren_n god_n give_v you_o to_o see_v that_o way_n whereby_o consent_v to_o one_o truth_n you_o may_v turn_v away_o the_o judgement_n from_o your_o head_n which_o otherwise_o will_v overtake_v you_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n if_o i_o shall_v prevail_v nothing_o with_o you_o which_o estimation_n i_o pray_v may_v be_v far_o from_o you_o yet_o i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o admonish_v the_o brethren_n that_o they_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n who_o do_v endure_v trouble_n and_o calamieye_n among_o you_o christ_n will_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o before_o his_o father_n if_o they_o shall_v abide_v constant_o in_o their_o profession_n fear_v not_o therefore_o the_o stately_a look_n and_o countenance_n of_o man_n but_o be_v ground_v upon_o this_o hope_n that_o which_o you_o have_v worship_v in_o darkness_n profess_v now_o open_o &_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o 6_o let_v he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n hear_v you_o therefore_o brethren_n of_o saxony_n for_o jesus_n christ_n sake_n give_v ear_n and_o hearken_v what_o action_n the_o spirit_n charge_v you_o with_o your_o praise_n be_v great_a in_o respect_n of_o your_o first_o combat_n and_o break_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o romish_a tyranny_n yea_o of_o you_o that_o in_o this_o be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o but_o the_o canaanite_n leave_v in_o your_o land_n be_v come_v to_o be_v thorn_n in_o your_o side_n and_o eye_n those_o few_o error_n neglect_v at_o first_o by_o the_o just_a iugement_n of_o god_n have_v bring_v forth_o new_a error_n by_o the_o contagion_n whereof_o true_a godliness_n be_v drive_v away_o and_o together_o with_o it_o true_a life_n lose_v there_o be_v leave_v unto_o you_o a_o church_n defile_v with_o horrible_a death_n neither_o be_v this_o the_o end_n of_o evil_n but_o some_o new_a great_a &_o sudden_a calamity_n shall_v come_v upon_o you_o unless_o you_o shall_v obey_v forthwith_o the_o spirit_n give_v you_o warning_n therefore_o let_v that_o unhappy_a obstinacy_n depart_v and_o be_v pack_v and_o take_v those_o counsel_n which_o may_v promote_v the_o truth_n recall_v again_o the_o banish_a life_n and_o may_v procure_v the_o salvation_n and_o safety_n of_o every_o one_o of_o you_o and_o do_v not_o only_o give_v ear_n but_o let_v all_o hearken_v &_o learn_v by_o your_o evil_n how_o great_a danger_n it_o be_v to_o cherish_v the_o least_o error_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n analysis_n so_o be_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o sardi_n this_o to_o the_o philadelphian_o be_v inscribe_v like_o wise_a to_o the_o angel_n he_o that_o send_v be_v notable_a for_o holiness_n truth_n and_o the_o key_n of_o david_n which_o he_o carry_v not_o idle_a but_o with_o the_o same_o open_v &_o shut_v the_o supreme_a power_n be_v in_o himself_o for_o 7._o the_o narration_n recite_v first_o the_o good_a thing_n both_o present_a of_o a_o open_a door_n which_o be_v illustrate_v by_o his_o cause_n a_o little_a strength_n and_o the_o constant_a observe_v of_o his_o word_n ver_fw-la 8._o and_o also_o to_o come_v both_o of_o subdue_a their_o enemy_n ver_fw-la 9_o and_o also_o of_o minister_a help_n in_o the_o common_a tentation_n of_o which_o also_o a_o reason_n be_v render_v from_o their_o patience_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n ver_fw-la 10._o after_o he_o provoke_v they_o unto_o a_o care_n of_o conserve_n that_o which_o be_v good_a because_o his_o come_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o there_o may_v be_v danger_n of_o their_o crown_n to_o be_v take_v away_o for_o 11._o then_o be_v there_o a_o great_a reward_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o pillar_n and_o shall_v have_v write_v upon_o it_o the_o name_n both_o of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n and_o the_o new_a name_n of_o a_o son_n ver_fw-la 12._o to_o all_o which_o be_v add_v in_o the_o end_n the_o common_a conclusion_n scholion_n 7_o and_o to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n we_o have_v show_v at_o the_o first_o chapter_n ver_fw-la 11._o that_o philadelphia_n be_v situate_a in_o a_o dangerous_a place_n and_o therefore_o not_o so_o frequent_a of_o cityzen_n who_o do_v dwell_v scatter_o in_o the_o field_n fear_v the_o often_o quake_v of_o the_o city_n but_o she_o carry_v a_o sweet_a name_n and_o which_o alone_o contain_v within_o it_o all_o virtue_n neither_o find_v out_o the_o apostle_n peter_n any_o thing_n when_o he_o will_v exhort_v to_o all_o godliness_n which_o may_v commend_v more_o fit_o the_o same_o unto_o we_o then_o brotherly_a unfeigned_a love_n 1_o pet._n 1.22_o how_o well_o this_o name_n do_v fit_a this_o church_n which_o be_v reprove_v of_o no_o sin_n open_o but_o as_o it_o be_v true_o godly_a because_o of_o brotherly_a love_n so_o be_v she_o lowly_a and_o not_o famous_a both_o through_o a_o continual_a fear_n of_o danger_n and_o also_o solitariness_n of_o the_o cityzen_n who_o dwell_v here_o and_o there_o and_o in_o waste_a place_n where_o they_o can_v get_v safe_a dwell_n wherein_o she_o be_v altogether_o contrary_a to_o pergamus_n a_o tower_a and_o proud_a city_n as_o before_o sardis_n to_o smyrna_n and_o thyatira_n to_o ephesus_n and_o so_o there_o be_v make_v 3._o pair_n of_o contrary_n it_o lie_v from_o sardis_n towards_o the_o south_n have_v a_o increase_n of_o great_a light_n as_o become_v a_o reform_a church_n she_o be_v set_v in_o the_o second_o place_n after_o sardis_n for_o this_o be_v the_o first_o after_o jesabell_n overcome_v where_o by_o be_v show_v that_o her_o antitype_n be_v the_o second_o reform_a church_n which_o shall_v arise_v after_o the_o german_n and_o this_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o helvetian_o suevia_n geneva_n france_n holland_n scotland_n i_o join_v all_o these_o into_o one_o because_o they_o live_v almost_o after_o one_o and_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o law_n and_o ordinance_n as_o touch_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o any_o moment_n neither_o do_v the_o distance_n of_o place_n break_v of_o that_o society_n which_o the_o conjunction_n of_o mind_n and_o will_n do_v couple_n yea_o this_o dispersion_n do_v agree_v chief_o to_o the_o philadelphian_o who_o we_o have_v show_v to_o dwell_v thick_a and_o more_o frequent_a in_o the_o field_n then_o in_o the_o city_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o thinness_n of_o ●he_n citizen_n take_v up_o much_o place_n though_o the_o citizen_n be_v not_o so_o many_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o this_o church_n which_o i_o speak_v of_o arise_v a_o little_a while_n after_o the_o germane_a when_o vlricus_n zvinglius_fw-la begin_v to_o teach_v at_o tigur_n in_o helvetia_n in_o the_o year_n 1519_o and_o the_o reformation_n be_v begin_v the_o four_o year_n after_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o year_n 1523_o at_o which_o time_n no_o papist_n dare_v enter_v into_o combat_n against_o zuinglius_fw-la who_o do_v defer_v the_o judgement_n of_o all_o controversye_n to_o the_o arbitrement_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n they_o of_o constance_n basill_n strasbourg_n geneva_n and_o other_o follow_v their_o step_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o former_a antitype_n be_v distinguish_v by_o long_a intervalle_n these_o three_o last_n as_o they_o have_v type_n less_o distant_a one_o from_o another_o by_o space_n of_o place_n so_o they_o be_v join_v one_o with_o a_o other_o with_o a_o near_a conjunction_n of_o time_n neither_o be_v they_o divide_v so_o much_o by_o age_n and_o limit_n of_o year_n as_o by_o law_n and_o custom_n for_o after_o the_o first_o receive_v which_o happen_v to_o some_o late_a than_o to_o other_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o they_o do_v all_o flourish_n together_o ¶_o these_o thing_n say_v that_o holy_a one_o that_o true_a one_o who_o have_v etc._n etc._n a_o description_n of_o he_o that_o send_v the_o epistle_n who_o two_o first_o property_n be_v take_v out_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o yet_o
to_o rejoice_v of_o so_o rich_a thing_n and_o of_o such_o prosperity_n no_o where_o in_o deed_n neither_o do_v i_o envy_v or_o grudge_n at_o it_o only_o our_o rejoice_a be_v not_o good_a and_o will_v god_n that_o our_o riches_n do_v serve_v to_o the_o promote_a of_o god_n glory_n rather_o than_o to_o the_o hinder_v thereof_o but_o they_o have_v bring_v in_o this_o miserable_a lukewarmness_n while_o that_o we_o may_v retain_v they_o we_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o true_a godliness_n the_o second_o boast_v be_v of_o the_o long_a continuance_n for_o this_o plenty_n it_o not_o new_a but_o which_o have_v be_v confirm_v now_o by_o the_o space_n of_o two_o and_o forty_o year_n with_o how_o great_a prosperity_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o may_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o reprove_v the_o condition_n of_o this_o church_n as_o maim_v and_o imperfect_a which_o the_o experience_n of_o long_a time_n have_v approve_v to_o be_v most_o happy_a not_o i_o in_o deed_n unless_o prosperity_n be_v a_o argument_n rather_o of_o god_n patience_n then_o of_o man_n justice_n in_o the_o three_o place_n he_o vaunt_v that_o he_o want_v nothing_o what_o tell_v thou_o i_o say_v he_o of_o other_o reform_a church_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o other_o reform_a church_n shall_v not_o imitate_v we_o rather_o than_o we_o they_o see_v we_o be_v inferior_a to_o they_o in_o nothing_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o admonition_n make_v to_o the_o parliament_n pag._n 226._o yea_o why_o do_v thou_o call_v i_o back_o unto_o the_o first_o church_n as_o though_o we_o be_v to_o be_v bind_v with_o the_o first_o beginning_n and_o principle_n as_o with_o fetter_n and_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o we_o to_o alter_v those_o thing_n which_o at_o their_o first_o original_a be_v not_o so_o profitable_a as_o at_o this_o day_n they_o seem_v hurtful_a this_o be_v in_o a_o certain_a apol._n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 81_o a_o bold_a that_o i_o may_v not_o say_v ungodly_a assertion_n to_o affirm_v that_o any_o thing_n ordain_v of_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v no_o less_o noxious_a to_o our_o church_n then_o profitable_a to_o they_o for_o which_o they_o be_v appoint_v but_o i_o remit_v this_o to_o the_o heat_n of_o contention_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v such_o a_o man_n know_v that_o the_o apostle_n church_n be_v most_o perfect_a and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v perfect_a by_o the_o invention_n of_o they_o that_o come_v after_o but_o that_o all_o other_o be_v to_o be_v try_v and_o examine_v by_o the_o square_a thereof_o that_o say_v of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nicen_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v which_o be_v let_v the_o old_a custom_n hold_v and_o that_o also_o of_o tertullian_n against_o praxeam_n behold_v whatsoever_o be_v first_o that_o be_v true_a and_o whatsoever_o be_v late_a that_o be_v false_a and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o paul_n teach_v tim._n most_o full_o how_o he_o hold_n behave_v himself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 1_o tim._n 3.15_o be_v all_o that_o instruction_n abrogate_a for_o oldness_n shall_v the_o time_n teach_v better_a &_o more_o certain_a thing_n to_o which_o those_o apostle_n shall_v give_v place_n sure_o the_o church_n as_o adam_n in_o the_o first_o beginning_n be_v pure_a the_o far_a she_o proceed_v the_o more_o filth_n she_o gather_v unless_o god_n extraordinary_o make_v the_o light_n to_o shine_v out_o of_o darkness_n as_o late_o in_o this_o last_o age_n that_o first_o church_n be_v the_o garden_n of_o eden_n as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o chap._n 2.7_o the_o church_n of_o the_o follow_a age_n compare_v with_o that_o be_v a_o wide_a and_o barren_a wilderness_n perfection_n be_v not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o multitude_n of_o professor_n or_o by_o amplitude_n of_o riches_n but_o by_o the_o integrity_n and_o pureness_n of_o god_n his_o institution_n and_o abundance_n of_o heavenly_a gift_n let_v it_o be_v then_o enough_o to_o praise_v man_n invention_n let_v we_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o sacred_a truth_n in_o comparison_n of_o they_o ¶_o and_o know_v not_o that_o thou_o be_v wretched_a the_o other_o cause_n of_o the_o evil_n be_v the_o ignorance_n of_o their_o misery_n for_o prosperity_n blind_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o world_n that_o it_o can_v see_v in_o deed_n in_o what_o state_n it_o be_v therefore_o in_o many_o word_n he_o declare_v this_o misery_n because_o in_o so_o deep_a a_o drowsiness_n a_o light_n upbraid_v will_v not_o cause_v any_o feel_n he_o make_v a_o fivefold_a degree_n of_o it_o of_o which_o the_o two_o first_o be_v as_o certain_a common_a accident_n the_o three_o last_o do_v show_v the_o very_a kind_n of_o the_o disease_n for_o the_o remedy_n be_v threefold_a of_o gold_n of_o garment_n &_o eye_n salve_n in_o the_o verse_n follow_v and_o teach_v that_o the_o disease_n consist_v chief_o in_o these_o three_o thing_n the_o accident_n be_v refer_v either_o to_o his_o own_o sense_n or_o to_o the_o compassion_n of_o other_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o the_o angel_n be_v wretched_a in_o respect_n of_o this_o miserable_a a_o man_n be_v wretched_a who_o be_v consume_v with_o some_o great_a sorrow_n whether_o it_o arise_v from_o a_o public_a calamity_n or_o from_o some_o private_a and_o domestical_a grief_n and_o there_o be_v none_o place_v in_o any_o dignity_n whatsoever_o who_o can_v keep_v himself_o from_o this_o anguish_n whereupon_o king_n in_o the_o tragedy_n lament_v that_o they_o so_o often_o be_v wretched_a such_o heaviness_n of_o mind_n do_v lie_v once_o upon_o the_o angel_n of_o laodicea_n as_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o our_o england_n how_o will_v thou_o say_v where_o no_o public_a calamity_n press_v the_o spirit_n speak_v of_o private_a sorrow_n as_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o glory_v of_o this_o angel_n for_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o place_n in_o a_o common_a mourning_n and_o sorrow_n but_o this_o interior_a grief_n do_v torment_v miserable_o the_o english_a ang._n for_o how_o great_a griepe_v do_v he_o feel_v who_o desire_v exceed_o riches_n &_o honour_n and_o can_v get_v they_o or_o at_o lest_o who_o can_v enjoy_v secure_o those_o thing_n be_v get_v who_o many_o godly_a and_o learned_a man_n do_v inveigh_v against_o with_o most_o grievous_a word_n and_o not_o this_o only_a but_o also_o do_v prove_v manifest_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n that_o such_o dignity_n be_v unmeete_a for_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o they_o can_v stand_v together_o with_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o pastor_n &_o bishop_n how_o must_v it_o needs_o be_v that_o these_o disturber_n shall_v be_v very_o grievous_a especial_o see_v this_o opinion_n be_v now_o favour_v of_o the_o multitude_n and_o the_o nobility_n have_v perceive_v plain_o long_o a_o go_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o if_o one_o can_v open_v the_o breast_n of_o this_o andgell_n doubtless_o he_o may_v see_v his_o heart_n almost_o consume_v with_o this_o grief_n howsoever_o without_o all_o thing_n be_v joyful_a &_o the_o common_a wealth_n flourish_v with_o happy_a tranquillity_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o angel_n will_v confess_v that_o i_o have_v touch_v his_o most_o inward_a sense_n in_o this_o thing_n this_o angel_n be_v miserable_a to_o other_o not_o to_o the_o wicked_a papist_n to_o who_o the_o former_a grief_n be_v not_o sufficient_a but_o to_o the_o godly_a brethren_n both_o at_o home_n and_o in_o other_o nation_n who_o be_v free_a of_o all_o partiality_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o bishop_n &_o other_o clergy_n who_o do_v give_v themselves_o whole_o to_o ambition_n and_o labour_n for_o honour_n to_o be_v miserable_a &_o unhappy_a howsoever_o it_o do_v very_o great_o please_v ourselves_o for_o what_o be_v worthy_a of_o more_o pity_n then_o to_o see_v brethren_n snare_v with_o the_o vain_a glory_n of_o the_o world_n altogether_o to_o desire_v and_o to_o enforce_v themselves_o to_o get_v earthly_a dignity_n and_o to_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o the_o heavenly_a crown_n if_o they_o have_v always_o lyen_fw-we in_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v lament_v but_o after_o that_o they_o have_v escape_v from_o his_o snare_n by_o the_o wholesome_a knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v entangle_v again_o in_o the_o same_o by_o this_o way_n what_o godly_a man_n can_v both_o be_v grieve_v at_o their_o change_n and_o also_o bewail_v the_o common_a misery_n of_o we_o all_o which_o by_o a_o thousand_o mean_n be_v draw_v into_o the_o same_o destruction_n such_o therefore_o be_v the_o accident_n grievous_a indeed_o of_o themselves_o yet_o but_o as_o a_o flee_v bite_v in_o comparison_n of_o the_o disease_n itself_o which_o now_o let_v we_o touch_v as_o gentle_o as_o we_o can_v and_o with_o the_o mind_n only_o to_o heal_v and_o not_o to_o
he_o reprove_v also_o king_n for_o their_o sake_n say_v touch_v not_o my_o anointed_n and_o do_v my_o prophet_n no_o harm_n psalm_n 105.14.15_o for_o the_o lord_n shall_v roar_v out_o of_o zion_n and_o his_o voice_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n amos_n 1.2_o why_o they_o be_v not_o the_o world_n wise_a at_o last_o when_o it_o see_v that_o this_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o evil_n because_o it_o do_v entreat_v so_o contemptuous_o and_o unworthy_o the_o church_n and_o the_o lightning_n and_o terrible_a thunder_n do_v signify_v punishment_n and_o not_o to_o be_v avoid_v by_o any_o mean_n as_o which_o do_v fall_v violent_o upon_o man_n from_o heaven_n but_o to_o what_o end_n be_v voice_n add_v sure_o voice_n do_v note_v out_o often_o time_n the_o crake_a of_o thunder_n as_o exod._n 19.16_o and_o there_o be_v voice_n and_o lightning_n and_o a_o thick_a cloud_n upon_o the_o mount_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o trumpet_n very_o loud_a so_o in_o chap._n 20.18_o and_o all_o the_o people_n do_v perceive_v the_o voice_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o trumpet_n but_o see_v in_o this_o place_n there_o be_v express_a mention_n of_o thunder_n the_o voice_n be_v refer_v to_o some_o other_o thing_n namely_o to_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n for_o he_o do_v allude_v unto_o that_o fearful_a sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n in_o give_v of_o the_o law_n whereby_o the_o israelite_n be_v summon_v to_o appear_v at_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n and_o judgement_n the_o sound_n whereof_o when_o it_o continue_v and_o wax_v very_o strong_a moses_n say_v i_o do_v fear_n and_o quake_v exod._n 19.19_o heb._n 12.21_o for_o the_o expectation_n of_o judgement_n do_v more_o abash_v and_o trouble_v their_o mind_n than_o the_o present_a horror_n of_o some_o terrible_a spectacle_n the_o fear_n of_o which_o the_o mind_n can_v sustain_v in_o some_o sort_n unless_o it_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o conscience_n of_o sin_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v cast_v down_o with_o the_o feel_n of_o this_o it_o quake_v at_o every_o show_n of_o evil_a as_o if_o torment_n be_v prepare_v and_o by_o and_o by_o to_o be_v undergo_v the_o voice_n then_o here_o be_v some_o strange_a thing_n betoken_v some_o evil_n to_o come_v or_o sting_v of_o conscience_n with_o which_o the_o mind_n be_v always_o torment_v with_o expectation_n of_o some_o more_o grievous_a thing_n to_o come_v this_o fear_n shall_v be_v as_o a_o torture_n to_o the_o wicked_a tear_v and_o vex_v with_o great_a torment_n of_o mind_n than_o any_o present_a though_o grievous_a calamity_n such_o than_o be_v the_o weapon_n which_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o this_o armoury_n which_o in_o deed_n be_v draw_v out_o and_o bring_v forth_o in_o a_o readiness_n for_o take_v of_o vengeance_n even_o as_o the_o use_n either_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o the_o necessity_n of_o any_o of_o the_o saint_n private_o do_v require_v wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o caufe_fw-fr why_o they_o shall_v fear_v the_o wicked_a world_n for_o who_o defence_n so_o grievous_a punishment_n be_v prepare_v ¶_o and_o seven_o lamp_n of_o fire_n after_o the_o grace_n of_o protection_n be_v declare_v the_o gift_n of_o sanctification_n of_o which_o the_o inward_a be_v signify_v by_o the_o seven_o burn_a lamp_n after_o the_o account_n of_o the_o seven_o spirit_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n chap._n 1.4_o for_o by_o the_o flame_n of_o these_o those_o lamp_n do_v burn_v with_o that_o difference_n only_o whereby_o the_o river_n differ_v from_o the_o fountain_n the_o which_o thing_n the_o lamp_n do_v signify_v vessel_n of_o a_o certain_a and_o limit_v measure_n whereas_o the_o spirit_n himself_o be_v unmeasurable_a and_o can_v be_v include_v in_o any_o straight_a vessel_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o be_v before_o most_o free_a not_o limit_v by_o any_o addition_n of_o any_o measurable_a quantity_n where_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o he_o as_o of_o the_o three_o person_n of_o equal_a glory_n and_o majesty_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n chap._n 1.4_o and_o these_o lamp_n be_v call_v the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n both_o because_o they_o be_v gift_n that_o flow_v from_o the_o spirit_n and_o also_o there_o be_v a_o most_o straight_o join_v together_o of_o the_o effect_n with_o his_o cause_n for_o they_o be_v most_o sweet_a fruit_n which_o the_o spirit_n create_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o give_v they_o faith_n hope_n charity_n peace_n joy_n pray_v and_o the_o other_o thing_n with_o which_o the_o elect_a be_v sanctify_v they_o be_v liken_v to_o lamp_n of_o fire_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o light_n in_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v to_o be_v light_v every_o day_n of_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n exod._n 27.20_o for_o the_o spirit_n will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v kindle_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o elect_a by_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o minister_n through_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o not_o to_o be_v expect_v contrary_a to_o the_o order_n deliver_v to_o we_o of_o himself_o there_o be_v the_o number_n of_o seven_o because_o of_o the_o manifold_a variety_n of_o gift_n wherewith_o he_o adorn_v the_o faithful_a as_o every_o where_o that_o number_n be_v use_v to_o note_v a_o infinite_a number_n last_o of_o all_o these_o gift_n be_v compare_v to_o fire_n for_o the_o lamp_n be_v of_o fire_n &_o burn_v before_o the_o throne_n because_o they_o inlighten_v the_o mind_n &_o burn_v up_o the_o stubble_n of_o the_o inbread_n corruption_n and_o kindle_v a_o desire_n of_o all_o godliness_n which_o john_n call_v the_o babptisme_n of_o fire_n mat._n 3.11_o and_o how_o great_a comfort_n arise_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o spirit_n himself_o be_v attribute_v to_o those_o gift_n which_o be_v say_v he_o the_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n from_o which_o the_o faithful_a may_v understand_v that_o that_o force_n which_o they_o feel_v in_o their_o heart_n raise_v up_o of_o god_n be_v a_o most_o sure_o pledge_v of_o god_n dwell_v in_o they_o such_o than_o be_v the_o inward_a gift_n of_o which_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o be_v destitute_a but_o some_o congregation_n of_o the_o godly_a shall_v be_v remain_v always_o in_o which_o those_o seven_o lamp_n shall_v burn_v 6_o there_o be_v also_o before_o the_o throne_n a_o sea_n of_o glass_n the_o first_o outward_a gift_n which_o serve_v for_o those_o inward_a as_o the_o instrumental_a cause_n be_v the_o sea_n of_o glass_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v some_o very_a great_a vessel_n and_o huge_a lake_n after_o the_o likeness_n once_o of_o the_o sea_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o which_o 1_o king_n 7_o 23._o likewise_o he_o make_v a_o melt_a sea_n this_o sea_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o such_o a_o vessel_n for_o how_o can_v that_o which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n compass_v with_o a_o company_n of_o elder_n stand_v round_o about_o be_v spread_v abroad_o on_o every_o side_n like_o the_o sea_n proper_o so_o call_v the_o circuit_n in_o deed_n of_o the_o elder_n may_v extend_v so_o far_o as_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o earth_n yet_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o remember_v that_o the_o thing_n be_v show_v to_o john_n in_o a_o type_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o think_v of_o any_o such_o unmeasurable_a space_n both_o the_o name_n and_o the_o largeness_n of_o the_o vessel_n do_v show_v the_o fullness_n of_o all_o gift_n which_o the_o church_n do_v draw_v from_o christ_n unto_o her_o salvation_n who_o receive_v the_o spirit_n without_o measure_n and_o from_o who_o infinite_a riches_n it_o be_v bestow_v upon_o we_o john_n chap._n first_o ver_fw-la 16._o for_o to_o what_o end_n otherwise_o be_v there_o so_o big_a a_o vessel_n at_o which_o aaron_n and_o his_o son_n shall_v wash_v their_o hand_n and_o their_o foot_n for_o cleanse_v whereof_o some_o small_a pitcher_n or_o cruse_v will_v have_v suffice_v and_o in_o deed_n this_o sea_n show_v very_o fit_o a_o certain_a resemblance_n of_o the_o whole_a outward_a worship_n which_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v to_o god_n the_o doctrine_n often_o time_n be_v compare_v unto_o water_n ho_o say_v isaiah_n whosoever_o thirst_v come_v you_o to_o those_o water_n for_o the_o carry_v away_o of_o which_o he_o commend_v no_o other_o bucket_n to_o be_v bring_v than_o the_o ear_n jnclyne_v your_o ear_n say_v he_o chap._n 55.1.3_o from_o whence_o the_o minister_n be_v call_v waterer_n 1_o cor._n 3.6_o baptism_n also_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o sea_n through_o which_o the_o father_n pass_v and_o be_v all_o baptise_a unto_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n 1_o cor._n 10.1.2_o furthermore_o the_o water_n note_v the_o spiritual_a drink_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o all_o say_v he_o drink_v the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n ver_fw-la 4._o by_o the_o same_o also_o prayer_n be_v signify_v as_o the_o israelite_n be_v
singular_a joy_n and_o thanksgiving_n of_o the_o whole_a creature_n but_o apart_o first_o of_o the_o church_n ver_fw-la 8.9.10_o and_o of_o the_o angel_n ver_fw-la 11.12_o after_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o creature_n ver_fw-la 13._o last_o of_o all_o the_o church_n together_o subscribe_v to_o the_o common_a joy_n &_o rejoice_v of_o all_o thing_n ver_fw-la 14._o scholion_n afterward_o i_o see_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n the_o common_a translation_n have_v in_o the_o right_a hand_n as_o also_o the_o interpreter_n of_o aretas_n but_o all_o the_o greek_a copy_n with_o one_o consent_n have_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n they_o peradventure_o have_v put_v it_o in_o the_o ablative_a case_n because_o it_o follow_v after_o in_o the_o seven_o verse_n that_o the_o lamb_n take_v the_o book_n from_o the_o right_a hand_n but_o this_o be_v no_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o natural_a property_n of_o the_o word_n when_o it_o may_v be_v that_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o creature_n may_v be_v make_v to_o appear_v the_o more_o the_o book_n at_o the_o first_o be_v not_o in_o the_o right_a hand_n but_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n from_o whence_o if_o there_o be_v no_o power_n to_o open_v it_o be_v offer_v and_o lay_v before_o without_o ask_v much_o less_o will_v there_o have_v be_v any_o if_o he_o have_v hold_v it_o in_o his_o hand_n afterward_o when_o the_o debility_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v find_v out_o the_o book_n be_v take_v into_o his_o hand_n that_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o lamb_n may_v be_v the_o better_o know_v not_o take_v it_o up_o hasty_o lie_v at_o his_o side_n but_o receive_v it_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n as_o touch_v the_o intent_n of_o this_o vision_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o spirit_n after_o the_o lively_a representation_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n which_o be_v to_o be_v lay_v as_o the_o fundament_n of_o all_o the_o building_n follow_v before_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o particular_a prophecy_n to_o put_v man_n in_o mind_n of_o the_o incomprehensible_a excellency_n of_o this_o prophecy_n for_o we_o be_v wont_v such_o be_v our_o slothfulness_n to_o pass_v by_o very_o great_a and_o excellent_a thing_n careless_o and_o sleep_o unless_o peradventure_o some_o body_n pull_v we_o by_o the_o ear_n and_o require_v instant_o diligence_n mention_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o thing_n lest_o perchance_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v fall_v out_o in_o this_o place_n he_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n that_o this_o be_v a_o prophecy_n of_o that_o kind_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o the_o danger_n that_o at_o to_o be_v undergo_v of_o the_o church_n through_o her_o whole_a race_n on_o earth_n yet_o wrap_v in_o so_o great_a obscurity_n that_o no_o create_a mind_n can_v behold_v it_o a_o far_o off_o much_o less_o unfold_v the_o same_o to_o other_o a_o argument_n in_o deed_n most_o worthy_a to_o be_v know_v and_o far_o most_o pleasant_a of_o all_o thing_n open_v to_o we_o the_o hide_a mystery_n with_o exceed_v great_a desire_n whereof_o man_n be_v inflame_v or_o otherwise_o in_o search_v out_o of_o they_o they_o torment_v themselves_o rash_o and_o in_o vain_a and_o yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v desire_v only_o for_o this_o cause_n to_o know_v it_o but_o because_o also_o it_o contain_v event_n of_o that_o moment_n that_o it_o will_v be_v very_o hurtful_a and_o for_o rowfull_a to_o the_o church_n if_o they_o shall_v whole_o be_v conceal_v therefore_o john_n weep_v be_v privy_a to_o the_o danger_n and_o together_o therewith_o also_o mind_v the_o lack_n of_o a_o guide_n and_o in_o deed_n the_o church_n hardly_o hold_v on_o her_o course_n though_o this_o lamp_n be_v give_v she_o how_o miserable_a have_v she_o be_v leave_v utter_o in_o darkness_n and_o not_o perceive_v sufficient_o either_o which_o way_n she_o shall_v go_v forward_o or_o where_o to_o set_v her_o foot_n safe_o john_n therefore_o have_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o weep_v if_o there_o have_v be_v hope_n no_o where_n of_o open_v the_o seal_a book_n but_o the_o sudden_a assault_n of_o grief_n bereave_v the_o holy_a man_n of_o understanding_n and_o suffer_v he_o not_o to_o think_v in_o who_o there_o be_v ability_n while_o at_o length_n he_o know_v by_o the_o put_n in_o mind_n of_o a_o other_o therefore_o this_o prophecy_n be_v famous_a for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o argument_n excellency_n of_o the_o mystery_n plenty_n of_o fruit_n but_o far_o way_n most_o excellent_a because_o he_o alone_o be_v find_v worthy_a to_o open_v the_o same_o who_o by_o his_o death_n find_v out_o a_o redemption_n for_o the_o elect_a this_o be_v that_o thing_n for_o which_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n last_o the_o universal_a creature_n rejoice_v great_o and_o that_o not_o for_o a_o glorious_a show_n without_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o the_o manner_n be_v in_o humane_a write_n in_o which_o the_o thing_n be_v amplify_v for_o to_o adorn_v and_o set_v they_o forth_o but_o from_o a_o true_a feel_n and_o just_a cause_n of_o rejoice_v as_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v see_v through_o god_n his_o help_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n shall_v not_o this_o exceed_a great_a joy_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n kindle_v in_o man_n a_o diligence_n to_o read_v a_o desire_n to_o understand_v and_o a_o endevoure_v to_o observe_v it_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o our_o serious_a meditation_n into_o which_o i_o have_v digress_v and_o discourse_v in_o many_o word_n because_o i_o see_v that_o the_o interpreter_n either_o not_o to_o have_v mark_v the_o intendment_n of_o this_o chapter_n or_o at_o the_o least_o otherwise_o then_o be_v meet_v to_o have_v speak_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o a_o matter_n very_o needful_a and_o necessary_a ¶_o a_o book_n write_v within_o and_o on_o the_o backside_n the_o first_o commendation_n of_o the_o prophecy_n be_v from_o a_o book_n a_o copious_a write_v and_o seven_o seal_n in_o this_o verse_n that_o which_o be_v record_v in_o a_o book_n must_v without_o all_o controversy_n be_v certain_a be_v a_o faithful_a helper_n of_o the_o memory_n whereas_o that_o which_o be_v no_o otherwise_o ground_v then_o only_o upon_o the_o memory_n may_v easy_o in_o continuance_n of_o time_n either_o be_v utter_o extinguish_v or_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a corrupt_v whereupon_o god_n bid_v jeremy_n for_o the_o great_a credit_n of_o that_o prophecy_n to_o write_v all_o the_o word_n that_o he_o speak_v unto_o he_o in_o a_o book_n in_o the_o thirty_o chapter_n of_o jeremy_n and_o in_o the_o 2._o verse_n so_o careful_a be_v he_o to_o provide_v against_o our_o doubt_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o think_v otherwise_o of_o the_o thing_n then_o of_o such_o as_o be_v write_v in_o public_a book_n &_o grave_v as_o it_o be_v in_o brass_n so_o as_o they_o can_v neither_o be_v alter_v nor_o forget_v the_o plenteous_a writing_n be_v show_v in_o that_o the_o book_n be_v write_v within_o and_o on_o the_o back_n side_n on_o both_o side_n of_o the_o leaf_n and_o he_o speak_v after_o the_o old_a manner_n of_o write_v in_o somewhat_o long_a parchment_n which_o afterward_o be_v wound_n about_o some_o round_o smooth_a piece_n of_o wood_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v call_v volume_n &_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o have_v unroll_v the_o book_n and_o roll_v it_o up_o again_o as_o in_o luke_n chapter_n 4_o verse_n 17._o and_o the_o outside_n that_o i_o may_v use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a theod._n beza_n always_o remain_v clean_a unless_o the_o inside_n be_v not_o able_a to_o contain_v the_o whole_a writing_n for_o than_o they_o write_v on_o the_o outward_a part_n which_o sort_n of_o write_n be_v call_v exterior_a writing_n as_o be_v write_v on_o the_o back_n side_n this_o so_o great_a prolixity_n therefore_o do_v contain_v not_o only_o the_o chief_a point_n which_o peradventure_o may_v be_v include_v in_o some_o narrow_a place_n but_o also_o every_o most_o small_a thing_n so_o that_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o need_n to_o seek_v and_o fetch_v aught_o from_o any_o other_o place_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o future_a thing_n and_o that_o we_o know_v also_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v do_v without_o the_o will_n of_o god_n the_o complutent_n edition_n and_o some_o other_o read_v without_o but_o on_o the_o back_n side_n be_v more_o often_o use_v from_o whence_o be_v write_v on_o the_o back_n side_n as_o we_o have_v show_v a_o little_a before_o final_o how_o precious_a be_v these_o mysterye_n which_o god_n have_v with_o himself_o seal_v up_o with_o so_o many_o seal_n the_o creature_n can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o look_v on_o the_o book_n as_o be_v in_o the_o four_o verse_n much_o less_o be_v there_o need_v of_o seal_n for_o to_o hide_v
tertullian_n i_o say_v send_v a_o most_o learned_a apology_n write_v against_o the_o gentile_n to_o the_o noble_n of_o rome_n by_o which_o at_o least_o secret_o as_o write_v franciscus_n zephyrus_n they_o may_v have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o common_a cause_n of_o christian_n see_v that_o open_o they_o may_v not_o neither_o do_v he_o think_v that_o only_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v to_o be_v call_v upon_o of_o he_o general_o but_o also_o by_o name_n scapula_n the_o precedent_n of_o cartage_n if_o peradventure_o he_o may_v tame_v by_o these_o mean_v his_o cruel_a mind_n he_o show_v he_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o the_o public_a calamity_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o wicked_a world_n by_o persecute_v the_o truth_n do_v bring_v upon_o themselves_o those_o sterility_n that_o after_o sow_a time_n the_o harvest_n be_v lose_v that_o deluge_n arise_v from_o shower_n of_o rain_n and_o fearful_a tempest_n mar_v all_o thing_n for_o so_o he_o speak_v yet_o we_o must_v needs_o be_v grieve_v because_o no_o city_n shall_v carry_v away_o scotfree_a the_o shed_n of_o our_o blood_n and_o also_o as_o under_o hilarianus_n the_o precedent_n when_o concern_v the_o floor_n of_o our_o burial_n thy_o cry_v together_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v tresh_v floor_n they_o be_v not_o their_o floor_n for_o they_o have_v not_o do_v their_o harvest_n which_o word_n show_v plain_o that_o there_o be_v great_a barrenness_n in_o those_o time_n when_o as_o there_o be_v no_o harvest_n and_o therefore_o as_o it_o seem_v those_o floor_n be_v give_v to_o the_o christian_n wherein_o they_o may_v bury_v their_o dead_a when_o through_o the_o great_a barrenness_n they_o be_v to_o no_o use_n for_o to_o lay_v up_o corn_n and_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o acknowledge_v here_o the_o black_a horse_n see_v the_o sun_n in_o the_o assembly_n at_o utica_n have_v almost_o quite_o lose_v his_o light_n and_o that_o not_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a eclipse_n but_o be_v place_v in_o his_o high_a and_o exaltation_n as_o witness_v the_o same_o tertullian_n to_o scapula_n neither_o do_v this_o want_n of_o sustenance_n torment_v only_o the_o wicked_a gentile_n but_o also_o do_v trouble_v the_o christian_n for_o god_n will_v have_v worldly_a good_n to_o be_v common_a to_o the_o profane_a and_o affliction_n to_o his_o own_o child_n that_o all_o of_o like_a fellowship_n may_v prove_v both_o his_o lenity_n and_o severity_n tertul._n in_o his_o apol._n so_o then_o the_o event_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o prophecy_n punish_v the_o world_n with_o a_o other_o scourge_n even_o famine_n which_o can_v not_o be_v raise_v from_o their_o drowsiness_n with_o that_o great_a sword_n and_o destruction_n of_o war_n the_o jesuite_n will_v have_v the_o black_a horse_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o heretic_n although_o according_a to_o his_o wont_a error_n he_o have_v no_o regard_n of_o the_o time_n for_o he_o refer_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o forty_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o mathewe_n write_v the_o gospel_n wherein_o he_o pass_v over_o the_o bound_n set_v of_o the_o angel_n i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o thing_n which_o must_v be_v do_v hereafter_o chap._n 4.1_o many_o heretic_n indeed_o arise_v in_o the_o time_n of_o that_o respite_n which_o the_o church_n enjoy_v under_o commodus_n as_o montanus_n and_o other_o of_o that_o sort_n but_o see_v the_o former_a horse_n &_o that_o which_o follow_v do_v note_v bodily_a calamity_n inflict_v upon_o the_o world_n for_o injury_n and_o violence_n offer_v to_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v unmeete_a to_o transfer_v this_o which_o be_v place_v between_o they_o into_o a_o other_o kind_n especial_o see_v there_o be_v a_o manifest_a consent_n of_o the_o history_n neither_o must_v we_o think_v that_o a_o famine_n belong_v to_o the_o common_a people_n be_v a_o light_a matter_n then_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v meet_v that_o man_n shall_v be_v forewarn_v of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o appoint_v these_o first_o calamity_n as_o pledge_n of_o the_o follow_a prophecy_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v call_v seal_n as_o it_o be_v confirmation_n of_o the_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v deliver_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o prediction_n be_v perceive_v which_o shall_v follow_v in_o the_o next_o time_n the_o faithful_a may_v be_v no_o less_o without_o doubt_n touch_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v in_o the_o last_o age_n therefore_o these_o seal_n be_v as_o the_o three_o kid_n three_o loaf_n of_o bread_n a_o bottle_n of_o wine_n likewise_o a_o viol_n a_o timbrel_n a_o pipe_n and_o a_o harp_n with_o which_o man_n meet_v saul_n make_v a_o more_o undoubted_a persuasion_n in_o he_o touch_v the_o promise_a kingdom_n 7_o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o four_o seal_n i_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n the_o four_o beast_n be_v a_o eagle_n flow_v on_o high_a and_o little_o esteem_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v on_o earth_n chap._n 4.7_o he_o stand_v in_o equal_a degree_n with_o the_o last_o former_a beast_n and_o do_v not_o attain_v that_o power_n of_o the_o first_o who_o roar_v sound_v out_o like_o thunder_n yet_o nevertheless_o by_o his_o eagle_n cry_v he_o instruct_v the_o faithful_a touch_v the_o evil_a to_o come_v who_o he_o bid_v come_v and_o see_v how_o great_a destruction_n shall_v come_v upon_o the_o world_n by_o and_o by_o 8_o and_o behold_v a_o pale_a horse_n the_o four_o type_n be_v a_o pale_a horse_n the_o sitter_n on_o who_o be_v describe_v by_o his_o name_n follower_n and_o the_o business_n commit_v to_o he_o the_o colour_n of_o the_o horse_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o proper_o signifi_v be_v green_a &_o a_o thing_n so_o green_a as_o grass_n some_o time_n it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o deformity_n of_o herb_n wax_v dry_a which_o have_v lose_v their_o colour_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v take_v for_o paleness_n which_o be_v the_o colour_n of_o a_o thing_n wither_v as_o pale_a fear_n because_o fear_n make_v man_n pale_a and_o constance_n the_o father_n of_o constantin_n the_o great_a be_v call_v chlorus_n for_o his_o paleness_n as_o say_v zonaras_n in_o diocletian_a that_o sickly_a colour_n do_v very_o well_o become_v the_o horse_n on_o who_o back_n sit_v death_n himself_o where_o he_o that_o sit_v be_v use_v for_o to_o he_o that_o sit_v which_o kind_n of_o speak_v be_v according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n as_o be_v observe_v chap._n 2.26_o although_o lest_o any_o shall_v think_v it_o to_o be_v against_o the_o rule_n of_o grammar_n and_o through_o his_o own_o ignorance_n impute_v barbarism_n to_o the_o holy_a writer_n we_o have_v also_o example_n in_o other_o tongue_n of_o most_o eloquent_a author_n livius_n speak_v thus_o the_o learned_a say_v he_o in_o religion_n and_o common_a law_n when_o duo_fw-la ordinarij_fw-la consules_a two_o ordinary_a consul_n of_o that_o year_n one_o perish_v by_o the_o sword_n the_o other_o by_o sickness_n deny_v that_o the_o substitute_v consul_a can_v have_v a_o assembly_n of_o people_n to_o choose_v officer_n where_o duo_fw-la ordinarij_fw-la consules_a be_v put_v for_o duorum_fw-la ordinariorum_fw-la consulum_fw-la that_o be_v of_o two_o ordinary_a consul_n so_o sallust_n therefore_o in_o the_o begin_n king_n for_o that_o be_v the_o first_o name_n of_o government_n on_o the_o earth_n be_v diverse_a part_v exercise_v their_o wit_n part_v their_o body_n many_o thing_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v note_v of_o learned_a man_n of_o who_o also_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o this_o manner_n of_o speak_v be_v very_o usual_a with_o the_o grecian_n first_o to_o the_o rider_n the_o name_n death_n be_v give_v from_o the_o proportion_n whereof_o name_n also_o be_v give_v to_o the_o former_a so_o as_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o white_a horse_n may_v be_v call_v truth_n on_o the_o red_a horse_n war_n on_o the_o black_a horse_n famine_n which_o i_o do_v mentione_n because_o i_o see_v that_o some_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n do_v fain_o here_o the_o devil_n and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o other_o to_o be_v the_o sitter_n now_o the_o sitter_n be_v name_v death_n for_o excellency_n sake_n both_o because_o the_o plague_n of_o this_o seal_n shall_v bring_v more_o swift_a destruction_n and_o also_o because_o it_o shall_v annoy_v with_o more_o kind_n of_o kill_v the_o three_o scourge_n of_o god_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v the_o pestilence_n as_o in_o ezechiel_n that_o they_o shall_v fall_v by_o the_o sword_n by_o famine_n and_o pestilence_n chap._n 6.11_o the_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o here_o make_v the_o captain_n of_o the_o rank_n but_o only_o muster_v into_o the_o place_n of_o a_o ordinary_a soldier_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v by_o and_o by_o the_o companion_n or_o rather_o wait_v make_v of_o death_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o in_o latin_a
any_o adversity_n trouble_v they_o which_o be_v signify_v by_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n moreover_o also_o all_o cause_n of_o calamity_n shall_v be_v drive_v far_o away_o the_o sun_n shall_v not_o burn_v they_o neither_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o heat_n which_o shall_v bring_v scarcity_n the_o whole_a creature_n shall_v consent_v to_o further_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o holy_a people_n here_o the_o thing_n be_v set_v before_o we_o in_o few_o word_n for_o a_o taste_n which_o shall_v be_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a afterward_o 17_o for_o the_o lamb_n that_o be_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o throne_n shall_v govern_v they_o now_o the_o cause_n be_v rehearse_v of_o the_o former_a happiness_n to_o every_o part_n of_o which_o it_o be_v distribute_v convenient_o shall_v govern_v answer_v to_o those_o word_n shall_v not_o hunger_n shall_v lead_v they_o to_o the_o lively_a fountain_n of_o water_n respect_v the_o thirst_n which_o he_o say_v shall_v be_v suffer_v no_o more_o and_o shall_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n have_v regard_n to_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o he_o promise_v shall_v not_o be_v trobelsome_a afterward_o ¶_o from_o their_o eye_n the_o tear_n fall_v from_o the_o eye_n montanus_n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v abide_v in_o the_o eye_n as_o if_o god_n by_o dry_v thorough_o the_o eye_n shall_v leave_v no_o faculty_n to_o weep_v isayah_n the_o tear_n from_o all_o face_n ch_n 25.8_o so_o then_o be_v the_o common_a type_n while_o the_o trumpet_n and_o viol_n endure_v that_o be_v even_o to_o the_o last_o end_n about_o the_o beginning_n and_o proceed_v of_o the_o trumpet_n the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a shall_v be_v seal_v about_o the_o end_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o more_o joyful_a more_o plentiful_a and_o more_o evident_a multitude_n which_o afterward_o under_o the_o viol_n increase_a every_o day_n at_o length_n shall_v have_v their_o brethren_n the_o jew_n join_v together_o with_o themselves_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o full_a happiness_n at_o last_o so_o great_a as_o can_v be_v expect_v on_o earth_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v discontinue_v again_o by_o any_o general_a misery_n of_o the_o time_n until_o christ_n himself_o shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n this_o common_a type_n be_v to_o be_v declare_v by_o every_o member_n in_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v behind_o according_a to_o the_o several_a mutation_n and_o notable_a event_n that_o shall_v happen_v this_o who_o space_n chap._n 8._o and_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o seven_o seal_n there_o be_v silence_n in_o heaven_n about_o half_a a_o hour_n 2_o and_o i_o see_v the_o seven_o angel_n which_o stand_v before_o god_n &_o to_o they_o be_v give_v seven_o trumpet_n 3_o then_o another_o angel_n come_v &_o stand_v before_o the_o altar_n have_v a_o golden_a censer_n &_o much_o odour_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v offer_v with_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n upon_o the_o golden_a altar_n which_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n 4_o and_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o odour_n with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n go_v up_o before_o god_n out_o of_o the_o angel_n hand_n 5_o afterward_o the_o angel_n take_v the_o censer_n and_o fill_v it_o with_o fire_n of_o the_o altar_n &_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o earth_n &_o there_o be_v voice_n &_o thundering_n &_o lightning_n &_o a_o earthquake_n 6_o and_o the_o seven_o angel_n which_o have_v the_o seven_o trumpet_n prepare_v themselves_o to_o blow_v the_o trumpet_n 7_o so_o the_o first_o angel_n blow_v the_o trumpet_n and_o there_o be_v hail_n and_o fire_n mingle_v with_o blood_n and_o they_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v burn_v &_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o tree_n be_v burn_v and_o all_o the_o green_a grass_n be_v burn_v 8_o and_o the_o second_o angel_n blue_v the_o trumpet_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a mountain_n burn_v with_o fire_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o sea_n become_v blood_n 9_o and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v in_o the_o sea_n the_o live_n thing_n i_o say_v dye_v and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o ship_n be_v destroy_v 10_o then_o the_o three_o angel_n blow_v and_o a_o great_a star_n fall_v from_o heaven_n burn_v as_o a_o torch_n and_o it_o fall_v into_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o river_n and_o into_o the_o fountain_n of_o water_n 11_o and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o star_n be_v call_v wormwood_n therefore_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o water_n be_v turn_v into_o wormwood_n and_o many_o man_n dye_v of_o the_o water_n because_o they_o be_v make_v bitter_a 12_o afterward_o the_o four_o angel_n blue_v the_o trumpet_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v smite_v and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o star_n so_o that_o the_o three_o part_n of_o they_o be_v darken_v and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o day_n be_v darken_v and_o likewise_o of_o the_o night_n 13_o and_o i_o behold_v and_o hear_v one_o angel_n fly_v through_o the_o mid_n of_o heaven_n say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n woe_n wo_n wo_n to_o the_o inhabitans_fw-la of_o the_o earth_n because_o of_o the_o sound_n to_o come_v of_o the_o trumpet_n of_o the_o three_o angel_n which_o shall_v blow_v analysis_n the_o common_a type_n be_v declare_v the_o silence_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o seven_o seal_n remain_v which_o of_o what_o it_o be_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o first_o ver_fw-la afterward_o he_o proceed_v to_o the_o follow_a period_n of_o the_o trumpet_n which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o this_o and_o be_v distinguish_v into_o seven_o trumpet_n the_o preparation_n of_o which_o be_v double_a common_a and_o special_a that_o consist_v first_o in_o the_o seven_o angel_n furnish_v with_o so_o many_o trumpet_n ver_fw-la 2._o afterward_o in_o one_o other_o angel_n who_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n as_o it_o appear_v from_o the_o furniture_n in_o respect_n both_o of_o the_o instrument_n and_o end_n ver_fw-la 3._o and_o also_o of_o his_o ministry_n towards_o the_o elect_a ver_fw-la 4._o and_o against_o the_o enemy_n partly_o by_o cast_v fire_n into_o the_o earth_n partly_o in_o raise_v up_o from_o thence_o voice_n &_o thundering_n and_o great_a perturbation_n ver_fw-la 5._o the_o special_a preparation_n be_v of_o the_o seven_o angel_n make_v themselves_o ready_a unto_o the_o business_n appoint_v to_o they_o the_o execution_n also_o have_v likewise_o some_o thing_n common_a to_o wit_n a_o warning_n by_o the_o blow_n of_o the_o trumpet_n and_o also_o something_o special_a even_o the_o proper_a effect_n of_o every_o blow_n of_o the_o trumpet_n which_o be_v distribute_v in_o the_o four_o first_o light_a and_o the_o last_o three_o heavy_a they_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o chapter_n by_o their_o distinct_a article_n at_o the_o first_o blow_v of_o the_o trumpet_n there_o be_v hail_n and_o fire_n ver_fw-la 7._o at_o the_o second_o a_o burn_a mountain_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n ver_fw-la 8._o at_o the_o three_o a_o star_n fall_v from_o heaven_n into_o the_o river_n ver_fw-la 10.11_o at_o the_o four_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v smite_v ver_fw-la 12._o as_o touch_v the_o three_o last_o more_o grievous_a trumpet_n the_o preparation_n common_a to_o they_o be_v have_v in_o ver_fw-la 13._o where_o the_o angel_n fly_v through_o the_o mid_n of_o heaven_n denounce_v with_o a_o mourn_a voice_n more_o horrible_a calamity_n from_o they_o follow_v scholion_n 1_o but_o when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o seven_o seal_n such_o than_o be_v the_o sixth_o the_o seven_o seal_n follow_v who_o effect_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o open_n be_v call_v silence_n which_o sometime_o be_v use_v for_o any_o rest_a as_o why_o be_v you_o silent_a in_o bring_v home_o the_o king_n that_o be_v why_o do_v you_o rest_v 2_o sam._n 10.11_o sometime_o it_o be_v oppose_v unto_o tumulte_n from_o whence_o the_o still_a wave_n of_o the_o water_n psal_n 107.29_o of_o which_o sort_n be_v this_o silence_n make_v in_o heaven_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n which_o often_o time_n be_v call_v of_o christ_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o space_n of_o this_o silence_n be_v about_o half_a a_o hour_n sure_o very_a shorth_o which_o shall_v almost_o end_v assoon_o as_o it_o shall_v begin_v in_o which_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o church_n afterward_o shall_v enjoy_v for_o a_o small_a time_n happy_a rest_n after_o that_o the_o open_a enemy_n shall_v be_v drive_v away_o and_o that_o comfortable_a angel_n constantine_n the_o great_a shall_v arise_v from_o the_o east_n for_o this_o silence_n be_v join_v together_o with_o that_o subdue_a
of_o the_o cruel_a enemy_n wherewith_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n be_v conclude_v for_o the_o common_a type_n of_o which_o sort_n be_v the_o whole_a seven_o chapter_n do_v not_o interrupt_v the_o order_n of_o thing_n and_o indeed_o such_o quiet_a day_n follow_v by_o and_o by_o after_o those_o trumpet_n for_o maxentius_n be_v overcome_v at_o rome_n by_o constantine_n and_o maxentius_n in_o the_o east_n by_o licinius_n how_o glad_a a_o day_n appear_v to_o the_o church_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n how_o great_a delectation_n how_o great_a joy_n how_o great_a triumph_n be_v there_o of_o all_o degree_n how_o pleasant_a be_v it_o that_o the_o prison_n be_v open_v that_o man_n be_v call_v back_o from_o the_o mine_n that_o their_o foot_n be_v loose_v from_o bound_n that_o their_o neck_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o axe_n neither_o only_a to_o have_v these_o thing_n but_o also_o a_o emperor_n of_o which_o never_o any_o man_n before_o do_v so_o much_o as_o dream_v who_o endeavour_v exceed_o to_o adorn_v by_o all_o mean_n that_o he_o can_v every_o one_o of_o the_o mean_a that_o be_v name_v a_o christian_n eusebius_n triumph_v not_o without_o cause_n sing_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n go_v to_o see_v you_o the_o work_n of_o jehova_n how_o he_o make_v desolation_n in_o the_o earth_n cause_v war_n to_o cease_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n how_o he_o break_v the_o bow_n and_o cut_v in_o piece_n the_o spear_n he_o burn_v the_o chariot_n with_o fire_n book_n 10._o 1._o now_o both_o the_o auguste_n as_o well_o licinius_n as_o constantinus_n with_o one_o mind_n do_v procure_v diligent_o not_o only_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o the_o ornament_n of_o peace_n as_o it_o be_v apparent_a from_o the_o decree_v publish_v in_o the_o name_n of_o they_o both_o euseb_n book_n 10._o chap._n 5._o etc._n etc._n but_o this_o be_v a_o short_a peace_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n but_o of_o half_a a_o hour_n continuance_n for_o first_o the_o auguste_n themselves_o be_v at_o concord_n scarce_o one_o three_o year_n space_n afterward_o when_o they_o be_v reconcile_v licinius_n assail_v open_o the_o christian_n and_o attempt_v a_o general_a slaughter_n there_o come_v more_o over_o civil_a war_n which_o wax_v fierce_a among_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n themselves_o who_o be_v void_a of_o all_o fear_n of_o the_o common_a enemy_n do_v fall_v one_o upon_o a_o other_o with_o the_o weapon_n of_o word_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v weary_a of_o peace_n even_o assoon_o as_o they_o have_v taste_v the_o sweetness_n of_o it_o with_o the_o top_n of_o their_o lip_n see_v aurelius_n victor_n of_o cesar_n part_n 2._o euseb_n book_n 10._o 8._o 9_o and_o upon_o the_o life_n of_o constantine_n book_n 1._o to_o the_o end_n &_o beginning_n of_o the_o second_o furthermore_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v note_v before_o at_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o the_o seven_o chapter_n 2_o and_o i_o see_v those_o seven_o angel_n such_o have_v be_v the_o silence_n from_o which_o at_o length_n proceed_v the_o second_o period_n distinguish_v from_o the_o former_a because_o the_o entrance_n into_o this_o begin_v not_o but_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o seal_n for_o shall_v the_o trumpet_n be_v answerable_a to_o the_o seal_n which_o be_v bring_v to_o their_o last_o end_n before_o the_o trumpet_n be_v prepare_v to_o sound_v more_o over_o take_v away_o the_o trumpet_n from_o this_o seven_o seal_n that_o which_o we_o leave_v unto_o it_o beside_o and_o above_o the_o silence_n of_o half_a a_o hour_n be_v a_o certain_a small_a thing_n and_o more_o slender_a and_o baren_a then_o beseem_v the_o dignity_n of_o it_o i_o see_v that_o such_o a_o opinion_n have_v please_v some_o learned_a and_o godly_a man_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v mark_v and_o observe_v the_o thing_n diligent_o shall_v perceive_v that_o the_o same_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o method_n of_o the_o revelation_n the_o herald_n of_o this_o period_n be_v the_o seven_o angel_n trumpeter_n the_o word_n themselves_o do_v not_o show_v plain_o whether_o these_o angel_n be_v good_a or_o no_o they_o be_v say_v to_o stand_v before_o god_n but_o this_o be_v a_o doubtful_a kind_n of_o speak_v in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o may_v be_v attribute_v as_o to_o the_o evil_a so_o to_o the_o good_a angel_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v that_o satan_n present_v himself_o together_o with_o the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o the_o lord_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o job_n first_o chap._n ver_fw-la 6._o but_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o seal_n and_o of_o the_o seven_o angel_n minister_n of_o the_o viol_n every_o one_o of_o which_o be_v clothe_v with_o pure_a linen_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n and_o at_o the_o sixth_o verse_n may_v cause_v we_o to_o esteem_v and_o judge_v these_o trumpeter_n in_o the_o same_o number_n of_o holy_a one_o especial_o see_v that_o the_o article_n those_o seven_o angel_n have_v also_o the_o force_n of_o nothing_o some_o that_o be_v know_v of_o which_o we_o have_v none_o before_o unless_o the_o finger_n be_v point_v unto_o those_o seven_o spirit_n of_o god_n send_v forth_o into_o all_o the_o world_n of_o which_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o five_o chapter_n and_o at_o the_o sixth_o verse_n we_o say_v that_o the_o four_o angel_n of_o the_o seven_o chapter_n be_v the_o four_o first_o trmmpet_n but_o we_o mean_v not_o the_o trumpeter_n themselves_o but_o the_o event_n which_o follow_v when_o they_o blow_v those_o their_o trumpet_n but_o the_o part_n of_o this_o period_n be_v distinguish_v by_o trumpet_n because_o these_o event_n shall_v be_v more_o notable_a more_o famous_a and_o manifest_a to_o all_o man_n and_o as_o it_o be_v sing_v with_o the_o public_a and_o loud_a voice_n of_o a_o trumpet_n in_o receive_v of_o which_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a preparation_n before_o they_o begin_v the_o work_n itself_o because_o by_o and_o by_o after_o the_o silence_n make_v there_o shall_v be_v give_v some_o token_n of_o the_o trouble_n to_o come_v before_o the_o rage_n shall_v wax_v hot_a and_o be_v kindle_v to_o which_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v that_o schime_n between_o cecilianus_n and_o donatus_n of_o africa_n of_o which_o we_o make_v mention_v before_o the_o apostasy_n of_o licinius_n and_o his_o wicked_a entreprise_n against_o the_o church_n the_o contention_n in_o the_o east_n touch_v the_o lord_n supper_n or_o passeover_n but_o especial_o the_o infection_n of_o the_o arian_n heresy_n the_o which_o assoon_o as_o it_o spring_v up_o begin_v to_o spread_v quick_o far_o and_o near_o and_o to_o kindle_v so_o great_a close_a and_o secret_a hatred_n that_o neither_o the_o scorn_v of_o the_o enemy_n on_o the_o theater_n nor_o the_o most_o earnest_a desire_n of_o the_o emperor_n himself_o testify_v both_o by_o his_o letter_n and_o tear_n and_o also_o by_o the_o embassage_n of_o holsius_n cordubensis_n a_o most_o famous_a old_a man_n can_v not_o avayle_n any_o thing_n at_o all_o to_o quench_v the_o flame_n for_o this_o see_v the_o second_o book_n of_o eusebius_n upon_o the_o life_n of_o constantine_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o alexander_n and_o arius_n all_o these_o thing_n as_o trumpet_n be_v give_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n as_o b●ing_v indeed_o sorrowful_a presagy_n of_o the_o future_a blow_v of_o the_o trumpet_n 3_o then_o a_o other_o angel_n come_v hitherto_o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o seven_o angel_n now_o follow_v what_o manner_n of_o entrance_n be_v make_v to_o the_o event_n follow_v in_o one_o angel_n who_o we_o may_v not_o suppose_v to_o be_v any_o spiritual_a substance_n such_o as_o be_v the_o angel_n proper_o so_o call_v that_o be_v to_o say_v gabriel_n or_o any_o of_o that_o sort_n as_o the_o jesuite_n will_v have_v it_o but_o a_o man_n according_a as_o this_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v wont_a to_o speak_v in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_a and_o ordinary_a then_o to_o give_v &_o attribute_v the_o name_n of_o a_o angel_n unto_o men._n furthermore_o this_o heaven_n be_v the_o holy_a church_n on_o earth_n the_o altar_n the_o more_o inward_a holy_a place_n of_o the_o same_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n which_o the_o angel_n proper_o so_o call_v do_v never_o execute_v but_o the_o truth_n of_o which_o belong_v only_o to_o christ_n the_o type_n unto_o man_n only_o who_o have_v a_o nature_n fit_a for_o sacrifice_n about_o which_o thing_n the_o office_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v chief_o occupy_v of_o which_o nature_n see_v the_o angel_n be_v void_a neither_o can_v they_o represente_v the_o priest_n neither_o any_o where_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v these_o duty_n attribute_v to_o they_o furthermore_o the_o ministry_n
marriage_n after_o in_o chap._n 19.7_o now_o therefore_o when_o the_o prison_n where_o break_v those_o mischief_n shall_v fly_v out_o which_o even_o hitherto_o make_v a_o stir_n in_o the_o inner_a part_n the_o four_o first_o of_o which_o be_v describe_v in_o this_o chapter_n far_o light_a indeed_o than_o the_o three_o last_o and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o albeit_o in_o a_o certain_a order_n of_o blow_v the_o trumpet_n they_o do_v assail_v yet_o they_o all_o do_v together_o come_v upon_o man_n with_o force_n distinguish_v only_o by_o short_a space_n of_o time_n to_o begin_v ¶_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o blow_v the_o trumpet_n this_o sound_n of_o trumpet_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v a_o voice_n manifest_v to_o john_n alone_o that_o be_v to_o the_o elect_a in_o the_o church_n the_o trouble_n that_o shall_v come_v such_o as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o first_o seal_n but_o the_o divine_a administration_n give_v by_o the_o holy_a angel_n so_o notable_a beginning_n to_o the_o fact_n that_o by_o the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o noise_n of_o trumpet_n all_o sort_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v awake_v for_o to_o consider_v the_o beginning_n of_o thing_n many_o thing_n do_v creep_v upon_o we_o by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o secret_o so_o as_o their_o beginning_n be_v unknown_a and_o be_v grow_v old_a before_o they_o be_v perceive_v but_o here_o the_o beginning_n shall_v be_v mark_v and_o perceive_v plain_o of_o any_o one_o so_o that_o the_o procede_v of_o they_o can_v not_o come_v sudden_o upon_o any_o man_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o will_v be_v wilful_o negligent_a although_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o trumpet_n do_v cause_n rather_o astonishment_n and_o fear_n then_o teach_v the_o hearer_n knowledge_n and_o so_o in_o deed_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o further_o we_o proceed_v the_o more_o obscure_a be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o event_n in_o the_o seal_v the_o beast_n do_v call_v john_n for_o to_o come_v and_o see_v in_o the_o trumpet_n there_o be_v never_o a_o word_n only_o a_o sound_n be_v give_v in_o the_o viol_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o noise_n but_o so_o far_o as_o the_o liquor_n pour_v out_o of_o a_o cup_n do_v yield_v certain_o as_o long_o as_o faith_n and_o godliness_n be_v sound_o as_o in_o those_o first_o time_n small_a judgement_n do_v awaken_v the_o church_n but_o in_o these_o last_o when_o iniquity_n be_v grow_v in_o use_n we_o pass_v over_o even_o the_o great_a work_n of_o god_n with_o eye_n shut_v up_o and_o deaf_a ear_n which_o carelessness_n of_o we_o god_n both_o disclose_v and_o reprove_v by_o this_o increase_a darkness_n of_o the_o sign_n for_o less_o light_n be_v not_o give_v from_o any_o lack_n of_o perspecuity_n in_o god_n but_o only_o for_o a_o reprehend_v of_o our_o future_a secutity_n 7_o therefore_o the_o first_o angel_n blow_v the_o trumpet_n all_o thing_n now_o be_v finish_v which_o hitherto_o cause_v a_o delay_n at_o length_n the_o angel_n sound_v the_o trumpet_n at_o the_o first_o sound_v a_o double_a effect_n follow_v the_o first_o be_v a_o shower_n of_o hail_n and_o fire_n the_o second_o the_o burn_a of_o tree_n and_o grass_n the_o hail_n come_v from_o heaven_n and_o with_o a_o great_a noise_n signifi_v the_o very_a great_a trouble_n which_o from_o the_o household_n servant_n of_o the_o church_n at_o least_o by_o outward_a profession_n shall_v fall_v sudden_o upon_o their_o own_o head_n but_o the_o fire_n mingle_v with_o blood_n the_o fervency_n of_o the_o same_o trouble_n and_o increase_v even_o to_o the_o shed_n of_o blood_n but_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o these_o mischief_n be_v set_v on_o fire_n with_o the_o burn_a coal_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o thing_n be_v here_o manifest_a for_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o defer_v for_o any_o long_a while_n but_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o nicene_n father_n the_o first_o angel_n blue_v the_o trumpet_n for_o the_o holy_a man_n have_v scarce_o approve_v the_o truth_n by_o a_o common_a consent_n after_o they_o have_v consider_v the_o matter_n diligent_o but_o the_o hail_n begin_v to_o fall_v down_o violent_o and_o to_o make_v a_o wonderful_a great_a noise_n certain_a bishop_n very_o citizen_n of_o the_o earth_n make_v a_o pretend_a show_n that_o they_o be_v offend_v with_o some_o word_n of_o the_o confession_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n inflame_v with_o the_o coal_n of_o the_o altar_n labour_v to_o hinder_v the_o consent_n and_o to_o be_v against_o it_o so_o far_o as_o in_o their_o power_n do_v lie_v these_o be_v five_o eusebius_n nicomedieosis_n theognis_n nicenus_n maris_fw-la chalcedonensis_n theonas_n marmariensis_n &_o secundus_fw-la ptolemaitensis_fw-la who_o malicious_o allege_v against_o the_o word_n consubstantial_a will_v neither_o agree_v with_o the_o rest_n touch_v the_o faith_n nor_o subscribe_v to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o arius_n this_o be_v a_o manifest_a beginning_n of_o the_o hail_n which_o a_o while_n after_o fall_v in_o great_a abondance_n for_o after_o that_o eusebius_n and_o theognis_n feign_v a_o alteration_n of_o their_o opinion_n have_v recover_v their_o former_a dignity_n they_o go_v about_o this_o one_o thing_n to_o try_v by_o all_o mean_n how_o that_o through_o the_o side_n of_o athanasius_n they_o may_v pierce_v the_o truth_n and_o these_o cunning_a deviser_n look_v so_o well_o to_o the_o matter_n that_o no_o time_n have_v be_v more_o troubleous_a through_o most_o impudent_a false_a accusation_n malicious_a surmise_n lie_n and_o unjust_a vexation_n that_o athanasius_n have_v kill_v arsenius_n have_v ravish_v his_o hostess_n have_v take_v away_o crafty_o the_o provision_n of_o corn_n at_o constantinople_n have_v minister_v money_n to_o one_o that_o attempt_v a_o alteration_n &_o what_o time_n afford_v exemple_n of_o like_a impudence_n the_o good_a arian_n bishop_n remove_v from_o his_o seat_n eustathius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n because_o he_o be_v one_o of_o they_o that_o hold_v the_o truth_n a_o whore_n be_v bring_v forth_o who_o object_v unto_o he_o dishonest_a conversation_n with_o she_o neither_o be_v these_o thing_n do_v secret_o and_o private_o but_o that_o we_o may_v acknowledge_v the_o huge_a noise_n of_o the_o hail_n in_o assembly_n full_a of_o man_n by_o continual_a run_n up_o and_o down_o from_o thracia_n &_o alexandria_n into_o syria_n by_o wicked_a accusation_n by_o appealing_n to_o the_o emperor_n in_o abrogation_n of_o ungodly_a sentence_n and_o approve_v of_o the_o same_o again_o so_o as_o the_o whole_a east_n have_v business_n enough_o by_o these_o mean_n &_o do_v ring_n on_o every_o side_n with_o the_o noise_n of_o this_o shower_n but_o the_o broil_n stay_v not_o here_o constantine_n the_o son_n of_o constanntie_n mingle_v hail_n with_o blood_n banish_v many_o put_v many_o to_o death_n how_o cruel_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o that_o he_o compel_v by_o torment_n to_o consent_v to_o the_o wicked_a opinion_n that_o reverend_a old_a man_n holsius_n of_o corduba_n to_o who_o his_o father_n give_v so_o great_a honour_n but_o the_o outrageousnes_n of_o valens_n be_v almost_o uncredible_a whereby_o the_o church_n be_v spoil_v on_o every_o side_n the_o faithful_a be_v cast_v headlong_o into_o the_o river_n orontes_n cruelty_n be_v exercise_v by_o every_o kind_n of_o death_n sure_o that_o ship_n in_o which_o under_o a_o colour_n of_o send_v four_o score_n excellent_a man_n into_o banishement_n he_o command_v they_o to_o be_v burn_v in_o the_o main_a sea_n be_v more_o unnatural_a than_o that_o weak_a ship_n of_o nero_n in_o which_o he_o devise_v a_o death_n for_o his_o mother_n and_o the_o bishop_n who_o of_o late_o pass_v all_o mortal_a man_n in_o impudence_n strive_v afterward_o with_o tyrant_n who_o shall_v be_v most_o cruel_a what_o slaughter_n do_v macedonius_n make_v through_o all_o the_o east_n georgius_n and_o lucius_n at_o alexandria_n it_o will_v ask_v a_o long_a time_n to_o set_v down_o all_o doubtless_o the_o former_a miserable_a time_n come_v again_o the_o name_n only_o of_o the_o enemy_n be_v change_v for_o those_o of_o the_o time_n pass_v be_v heathen_a but_o these_o be_v false_a christian_n very_o the_o wonderful_a and_o marvelous_a fall_n of_o hail_n in_o &_o about_o those_o time_n show_v manifest_o what_o be_v the_o state_n of_o thing_n and_o hale_v fill_v the_o hand_n rush_v down_o violent_o every_o several_a hailestone_n be_v as_o great_a as_o the_o hand_n can_v conteme_z as_o socrates_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n do_v say_v and_o it_o seem_v that_o gregorius_n nazianzenus_n at_o that_o time_n make_v that_o oration_n who_o inscription_n be_v this_o when_o the_o father_n hold_v his_o peace_n because_o of_o the_o calamity_n of_o the_o hail_n ¶_o and_o they_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n so_o read_v aretas_n the_o common_a latin_a
the_o african_a vandal_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o by_o their_o mean_n it_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o sun_n in_o those_o country_n do_v go_v down_o always_o to_o this_o very_a day_n for_o after_o that_o horrible_a darkness_n which_o the_o vandal_n bring_v in_o god_n by_o his_o fearful_a judgement_n give_v up_o those_o nation_n to_o the_o mahumeticall_a madness_n who_o hellish_a darkness_n at_o this_o time_n suffer_v no_o comfortable_a sun_n beam_n to_o shine_v upon_o they_o how_o be_v it_o to_o be_v lament_v that_o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n which_o afore_o time_n be_v beset_v with_o most_o famous_a light_n tertullian_n cyprian_n augustine_n and_o other_o almost_o infinite_a be_v now_o altogether_o become_v black_a and_o do_v not_o shine_v with_o one_o little_a sparkle_n but_o so_o be_v thy_o will_n most_o holy_a father_n who_o have_v compass_v about_o we_o european_n leave_v alone_o and_o most_o wicked_o abuse_v thy_o holy_a name_n with_o very_o sorrowful_a spectacle_n of_o thy_o wrath_n both_o towards_o the_o east_n &_o south_n so_o therefore_o be_v the_o four_o first_o trumpet_n contention_n ambition_n heresy_n &_o war_n those_o four_o angel_n which_o constantine_n the_o great_a for_o a_o time_n restrain_v but_o the_o first_o and_o three_o trumpet_n belong_v to_o the_o east_n the_o second_o to_o the_o west_n the_o four_o to_o africa_n the_o prophecy_n of_o this_o chapter_n contain_v about_o two_o hundred_o &_o thirty_o year_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o constantine_n unto_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n five_o hundred_o thirty_o and_o three_o at_o which_o time_n belisarius_n carry_v away_o captive_a gilimer_n and_o destroy_v the_o name_n of_o the_o vandal_n in_o africa_n evag._n book_n 4.16_o you_o may_v fetch_v a_o large_a declaration_n from_o eseb_n upon_o the_o life_n of_o constantine_n from_o socrates_n theodoret_n sozomene_n evagrius_n procopius_n of_o the_o war_n of_o the_o vandal_n and_o victor_n of_o utica_n touch_v the_o persecution_n of_o the_o same_o man_n who_o commentary_n god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v extant_a for_o the_o light_n and_o credit_n of_o this_o prophecy_n 13_o and_o i_o see_v and_o hear_v one_o angel_n now_o he_o come_v to_o the_o three_o last_o trumpet_n much_o more_o troublous_a than_o the_o former_a as_o appear_v from_o the_o common_a preparation_n in_o this_o verse_n for_o as_o though_o the_o usual_a sound_v of_o the_o trumpet_n be_v not_o of_o sufficient_a force_n to_o cause_n fear_n a_o common_a proheme_n to_o these_o three_o full_a of_o terror_n be_v prefix_v every_o several_a afterward_o be_v declare_v by_o their_o transition_n as_o touch_v the_o word_n some_o read_v for_o a_o angel_n a_o eagle_n as_o aretas_n the_o complutent_n edition_n and_o the_o common_a translation_n bring_v hereunto_o as_o it_o seem_v because_o the_o four_o beast_n be_v like_o a_o fly_a eagle_n chap._n 4.7_o but_o the_o word_n one_o be_v adjoin_v make_v against_o it_o for_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v the_o limit_v of_o a_o thing_n uncertain_a and_o indefinite_a but_o the_o eagle_n the_o four_o beast_n be_v only_o one_o wherefore_o it_o have_v be_v superfluous_a to_o say_v i_o hear_v one_o eagle_n therefore_o one_o angel_n agree_v better_a which_o word_n be_v general_a and_o by_o right_n may_v be_v limit_v with_o some_o addition_n as_o andreas_n read_v and_o some_o other_o greek_a copy_n furthermore_o he_o be_v call_v a_o angel_n which_o fly_v through_o the_o mid_n of_o heaven_n after_z in_o chap._n 14.6_o but_o this_o one_o angel_n be_v some_o one_o man_n alone_o pick_v and_o choose_v out_o from_o the_o rest_n to_o some_o peculiar_a office_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o the_o mid_n of_o heaven_n as_o the_o astronomer_n call_v it_o who_o call_v midday_n in_o this_o wise_a but_o the_o mid_n between_o earth_n and_o heaven_n to_o wit_n the_o mid_n of_o height_n not_o of_o length_n as_o the_o angel_n appear_v to_o david_n 1_o chron._n 21.16_o but_o see_v heaven_n be_v the_o holy_a church_n and_o the_o earth_n the_o false_a and_o counterfeit_n which_o carry_v the_o name_n &_o show_v only_o of_o the_o true_a this_o angel_n be_v see_v betwixt_o both_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v attain_v the_o purity_n of_o that_o and_o yet_o to_o have_v fly_v somewhat_o aloft_o beyond_o the_o dregs_n and_o filth_n of_o this_o he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n that_o he_o may_v be_v hear_v of_o all_o man_n that_o there_o shall_v come_v far_o great_a calamity_n from_o the_o three_o trumpet_n that_o be_v to_o come_v than_o yet_o have_v go_v before_o but_o that_o these_o shall_v come_v upon_o the_o inhabitans_fw-la of_o the_o earth_n who_o do_v counterfeit_a holiness_n whereas_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o be_v wither_v branch_n and_o rot_a member_n the_o time_n and_o congruency_n of_o the_o matter_n do_v make_v i_o to_o think_v that_o this_o angel_n be_v gregory_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v one_o as_o it_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o rabble_n of_o many_o bishop_n who_o labour_n god_n will_v use_v to_o profit_v his_o church_n but_o although_o he_o sit_v unwares_o in_o the_o chair_n of_o wickedness_n yet_o god_n know_v to_o pluck_v his_o out_o of_o the_o jaw_n of_o hell_n and_o significant_o doubtless_o be_v he_o call_v one_o as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o miracle_n for_o any_o one_o of_o any_o goodness_n to_o be_v find_v among_o that_o degenerate_v rout_n this_o gregory_n do_v fly_v in_o the_o mid_n of_o heaven_n press_v down_o with_o many_o superstition_n and_o error_n that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v enroll_v a_o citizen_n of_o the_o heavenly_a city_n who_o nevertheless_o singular_a good_a will_n care_n diligence_n right_a judgement_n in_o many_o thing_n lift_v he_o up_o on_o high_a far_o above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o common_a sort_n and_o that_o company_n of_o superstitious_a one_o he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n denounce_v to_o the_o world_n a_o great_a calamity_n by_o antichrist_n who_o shall_v come_v straight_o way_n the_o king_n say_v he_o of_o pride_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o which_o be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v speak_v a_o army_n of_o priest_n be_v prepare_v book_n 4._o epist_n 24._o again_o the_o king_n of_o pride_n be_v at_o the_o door_n in_o the_o same_o book_n epist_n 38._o in_o the_o same_o place_n again_o where_o be_v that_o antichrist_n which_o challenge_v the_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o for_o who_o be_v prepare_v a_o army_n of_o priest_n to_o attend_v upon_o he_o he_o be_v at_o hand_n say_v he_o and_o at_o the_o door_n yea_o he_o be_v far_o near_a than_o he_o think_v in_o who_o chair_n he_o sit_v even_o himself_o but_o by_o his_o account_n he_o can_v not_o be_v far_o of_o neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a to_o diminish_v the_o pope_n credit_n who_o can_v not_o be_v deceive_v especial_o avouch_v the_o same_o thing_n so_o often_o and_o in_o earnest_n see_v therefore_o that_o this_o gregory_n next_o after_o the_o four_o trumpet_n that_o be_v the_o vandalike_a persecution_n so_o express_o cry_v out_o aloud_o that_o antichrist_n be_v at_o hand_n than_o who_o no_o great_a plague_n and_o calamity_n can_v befall_v the_o earth_n and_o that_o a_o few_o year_n before_o that_o the_o monster_n bear_v long_o ago_o break_v forth_o into_o the_o open_a light_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o he_o be_v this_o angel_n who_o be_v show_v almost_o so_o plain_o by_o this_o type_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v name_v chap._n 9_o than_o the_o five_o angel_n blue_v the_o trumpet_n and_o i_o see_v a_o star_n fall_v from_o heaven_n into_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o that_o star_n be_v give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n 2_o he_o open_v therefore_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o there_o arise_v a_o smoke_n out_o of_o the_o pit_n as_o the_o smoke_n of_o a_o great_a furnace_n and_o the_o sun_n be_v darken_v and_o the_o air_n by_o the_o smoke_n of_o the_o pit_n 3_o and_o there_o come_v out_o of_o the_o smoke_n locust_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o unto_o they_o be_v give_v power_n as_o the_o scorpion_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v power_n 4_o but_o to_o they_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o hurt_v the_o hay_n of_o the_o earth_n neither_o any_o green_a thing_n neither_o any_o tree_n but_o only_o those_o man_n which_o have_v not_o the_o seal_n of_o god_n in_o their_o forehead_n 5_o and_o to_o they_o be_v command_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o kill_v they_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v torment_v five_o month_n and_o that_o their_o torment_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o torment_n of_o a_o scorpion_n when_o he_o have_v sting_v a_o man_n 6_o therefore_o in_o those_o day_n shall_v man_n seek_v death_n and_o shall_v not_o find_v it_o and_o shall_v desire_v to_o die_v and_o death_n shall_v
plentiful_a leave_n to_o enjoy_v his_o presence_n then_o in_o the_o time_n go_v next_o before_o yet_o howsoever_o he_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n he_o be_v clothe_v with_o a_o cloud_n not_o know_v indeed_o plain_o to_o the_o world_n but_o cover_v yet_o with_o so_o great_a darkness_n that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v see_v as_o it_o be_v through_o a_o lattice_n he_o carry_v the_o rainbow_n on_o his_o head_n a_o notable_a messenger_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n and_o of_o fair_a weather_n both_o that_o we_o may_v understand_v he_o to_o be_v faithful_a and_o constant_a in_o his_o promise_n and_o also_o that_o the_o former_a storm_n shall_v be_v drive_v away_o daily_o more_o and_o more_o by_o little_a and_o little_a until_o at_o length_n a_o clear_a sky_n shall_v return_v on_o every_o side_n his_o face_n shine_v like_o the_o sun_n christ_n indeed_o be_v most_o glorious_a at_o least_o in_o that_o part_n in_o which_o he_o be_v know_v and_o perceive_v of_o man_n but_o his_o foot_n do_v yet_o burn_v with_o fire_n because_o his_o low_a member_n on_o the_o earth_n must_v burn_v yet_o with_o a_o great_a heat_n of_o affliction_n although_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o danger_n of_o perish_v in_o this_o fire_n for_o the_o foot_n be_v pillar_n yea_o and_o that_o also_o of_o brass_n chap._n 1_o 15._o for_o these_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o same_o time_n see_v chap._n 2.18_o so_o therefore_o christ_n carry_v in_o his_o own_o person_n a_o image_n of_o the_o present_a church_n under_o the_o sixth_o trumpet_n which_o begin_v to_o increase_v again_o about_o the_o year_n 1300_o yet_o cover_v with_o much_o darkness_n which_o notwithstanding_o give_v hope_n of_o a_o more_o perfect_a restore_n in_o due_a time_n &_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o reveal_v the_o most_o sweet_a face_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o world_n have_v not_o see_v a_o long_a time_n although_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o mean_a season_n be_v tread_v down_o with_o many_o calamity_n 2_o and_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n a_o little_a book_n open_a to_o who_o fit_v better_o a_o open_a book_n then_o to_o he_o who_o have_v open_v the_o seal_n of_o it_o chap_n 5.5_o because_o therefore_o christ_n come_v forth_o with_o a_o open_a book_n it_o be_v teach_v that_o now_o again_o after_o long_a ignorance_n leave_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o man_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n as_o we_o know_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v about_o that_o time_n for_o at_o once_o the_o turk_n begin_v to_o wax_v strong_a in_o the_o east_n and_o most_o learned_a man_n to_o arise_v in_o the_o west_n who_o maintain_v the_o truth_n bold_o but_o it_o be_v only_o a_o little_a book_n which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n to_o wit_v a_o small_a book_n either_o because_o the_o end_n now_o approach_v there_o shall_v not_o remain_v so_o many_o alteration_n but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v contain_v in_o a_o little_a book_n as_o after_o in_o the_o sixth_o verse_n delay_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o or_o rather_o because_o the_o knowledge_n of_o man_n in_o this_o time_n shall_v be_v slender_a and_o small_a whereunto_o pertain_v the_o clothing_n with_o a_o cloud_n as_o we_o have_v show_v at_o the_o former_a verse_n ¶_o and_o he_o put_v his_o right_a foot_n upon_o the_o sea_n this_o gross_a sea_n of_o the_o inferior_a world_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o corrupt_a church_n as_o chap._n 8.8_o no_o less_o also_o pertain_v to_o they_o who_o be_v the_o administration_n of_o this_o doctrine_n the_o earth_n contain_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o common_a people_n who_o in_o name_n be_v christian_n but_o the_o foot_n be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n his_o faithful_a servant_n by_o who_o as_o it_o be_v by_o foot_n he_o walk_v on_o earth_n of_o these_o the_o right_a foot_n be_v the_o strong_a by_o which_o be_v set_v upon_o the_o sea_n it_o be_v declare_v that_o christ_n now_o at_o length_n will_v choose_v out_o some_o from_o that_o vile_a sort_n of_o ecclesiastical_a man_n for_o to_o be_v his_o foot_n and_o faithful_a member_n also_o the_o left_a foot_n place_v on_o the_o earth_n show_v that_o he_o will_v take_v out_o likewise_o some_o from_o the_o lie_v people_n who_o although_o they_o can_v not_o compare_v with_o the_o ecclesiastical_a those_o right_a foot_n in_o excellency_n of_o gift_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v his_o true_a member_n &_o enjoy_v the_o same_o honour_n with_o they_o such_o right_a foot_n be_v johannes_n de_fw-fr poliaco_n martinus_n patavinus_n johannes_n de_fw-fr ganduno_n michael_n cicerius_fw-la michael_n de_fw-fr coriaria_n guilielmus_fw-la ockam_n gerardus_n ridder_n johannes_n rochetalada_n armachanus_fw-la a_o irish_a bishop_n joannes_n wtcklefus_fw-la and_o other_o christ_n draw_v they_o out_o of_o the_o salt_n sea_n of_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n who_o he_o take_v out_o from_o the_o company_n of_o ecclesiastical_a man_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o sweet_a and_o wholesome_a water_n of_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o the_o lie_v people_n he_o have_v for_o his_o left_a foot_n ludovicus_n bavarus_n the_o emperaur_n marsilius_n patavinus_n dantem_fw-la aligherium_fw-la and_o many_o other_o who_o defend_v to_o their_o power_n the_o truth_n see_v and_o acknowledge_v 3_o and_o he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n as_o as_o lion_n roar_v hitherto_o have_v be_v the_o description_n of_o the_o angel_n now_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v seal_v up_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o wit_n the_o cry_v out_o of_o a_o angel_n like_o a_o bellow_a lion_n for_o so_o the_o greek_a word_n signifi_v proper_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o ox_n and_o the_o like_a beast_n lion_n be_v proper_o say_v to_o roar_v albeit_o some_o time_n it_o be_v attribute_v to_o ass_n and_o camel_n as_o hesichius_n show_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o make_v a_o ro●ring_n like_o unto_o ass_n camel_n and_o ox_n but_o the_o angel_n bellow_v bccause_n he_o must_v speak_v soft_o and_o dare_v not_o to_o lift_v up_o his_o voice_n for_o there_o be_v join_v together_o with_o it_o he_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n but_o that_o he_o may_v show_v that_o the_o meekness_n and_o patience_n of_o the_o ox_n be_v now_o to_o be_v mix_v with_o the_o courage_n of_o the_o lion_n and_o so_o indeed_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v revive_v again_o then_o in_o his_o member_n cry_v out_o strong_o which_o cry_v out_o nevertheless_o carry_v a_o show_n of_o the_o bellow_a ox_n only_o neither_o yet_o make_v any_o man_n great_o afraid_a those_o first_o spring_v up_o christian_a worthy_n strive_v by_o lament_n and_o complain_v speech_n yet_o nevertheless_o they_o bear_v a_o grievous_a yoke_n of_o bondage_n which_o they_o can_v not_o shake_v of_o whatsoever_o struggle_v they_o make_v against_o it_o ¶_o the_o seven_o thunder_n utter_v their_o voice_n which_o as_o a_o echo_n answer_v this_o low_v and_o these_o seven_o thunder_n be_v i_o suppose_v those_o angel_n of_o which_o afterward_o in_o chap._n 14.6_o etc._n etc._n sure_o the_o time_n agree_v fit_o as_o we_o will_v show_v at_o the_o place_n then_o also_o their_o office_n may_v worthy_o be_v liken_v to_o thunder_n which_o sound_v again_o when_o this_o roar_n be_v utter_v for_o take_v their_o beginning_n from_o thence_o they_o make_v a_o noise_n with_o so_o great_a roar_n that_o such_o as_o despise_v the_o low_v of_o the_o angel_n shall_v at_o length_n begin_v to_o tremble_v for_o fear_n of_o this_o thunder_n but_o it_o be_v a_o excellent_a thing_n that_o the_o thunder_n speak_v not_o but_o at_o the_o cry_v out_o of_o the_o angel_n even_o as_o also_o the_o echo_n have_v no_o voice_n of_o itself_o but_o only_o yield_v again_o the_o voice_n which_o it_o have_v receive_v so_o those_o restorer_n of_o the_o truth_n howsoever_o the_o world_n condemn_v they_o of_o novelty_n bring_v notwithstanding_o nothing_o but_o that_o which_o themselves_o have_v learn_v of_o god_n 4_o and_o when_o the_o seven_o thunder_n etc._n etc._n such_o be_v the_o cause_n now_o be_v show_v the_o care_n of_o john_n who_o when_o the_o seven_o thunder_n be_v hear_v be_v about_o to_o write_v a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n prohibit_v &_o bid_v to_o seal_v they_o up_o these_o mystery_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v secret_a as_o before_o the_o book_n can_v not_o be_v read_v as_o long_o as_o it_o be_v seal_v chap._n 5._o for_o these_o time_n know_v not_o what_o those_o thunder_n do_v speak_v neither_o do_v they_o mark_v whereunto_o at_o length_n they_o will_v come_v ¶_o and_o write_v they_o not_o so_o aretas_n the_o common_a translation_n and_o other_o greek_a copy_n as_o though_o these_o word_n shall_v declare_v what_o that_o seal_n shall_v be_v to_o wit_n not_o to_o put_v in_o writing_n but_o to_o have_v it_o secret_a for_o himself_o alone_o but_o be_v any_o thing_n reveal_v private_o to_o john_n which_o
declare_v his_o stock_n by_o his_o rise_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o also_o by_o his_o likeness_n to_o the_o lamb_n and_o dragon_n ver_fw-la 11._o the_o power_n also_o of_o this_o be_v great_a as_o appeareth_z in_o subdue_a man_n to_o worship_v the_o first_o beast_n for_o 12._o and_o that_o partly_o in_o deceive_v by_o great_a wonder_n ver_fw-la 13._o and_o lie_v for_o 14._o partly_o in_o compel_v both_o by_o punishment_n of_o death_n to_o worship_v the_o live_a image_n ver_fw-la 15._o and_o also_o by_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o good_n to_o receive_v the_o mark_n that_o shall_v be_v print_v upon_o they_o which_o be_v declare_v both_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v either_o man_n or_o member_n ver_fw-la 16._o &_o how_o manifold_a to_o wit_n the_o mark_n the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n ver_fw-la 17._o which_o number_n be_v set_v forth_o both_o by_o a_o exhortation_n to_o count_v it_o and_o by_o a_o note_n partly_o to_o who_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o wit_n of_o a_o man_n partly_o how_o many_o it_o be_v to_o wit_n six_o hundred_o three_o score_n and_o six_o scholion_n ¶_o then_o i_o see_v a_o beast_n that_o the_o whole_a next_o treatise_n may_v be_v more_o clear_a two_o thing_n brief_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o unfolding_n of_o every_o several_a thing_n the_o first_o be_v the_o kind_n of_o this_o beast_n the_o other_o of_o the_o time_n wherein_o he_o arise_v as_o touch_v that_o first_o this_o beast_n be_v not_o the_o civil_a roman_a empire_n either_o heathenish_a or_o christian_a corrupt_v with_o heresy_n for_o if_o we_o regard_v the_o heathen_a emperor_n they_o reign_v when_o john_n write_v but_o this_o beast_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v who_o first_o beginning_n he_o see_v in_o a_o type_n for_o nothing_o who_o original_a he_o have_v represent_v unto_o he_o be_v pass_v but_o to_o come_v according_a to_o that_o say_n i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o thing_n which_o must_v be_v do_v hereafter_o chap._n 4.1_o but_o the_o angel_n afterward_o affirm_v plain_o that_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v say_v five_o be_v fall_v one_o be_v and_o a_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v chap._n 17.10_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o that_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v be_v this_o beast_n ver_fw-la 12._o be_v ten_o king_n who_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v the_o kingdom_n but_o shall_v receive_v power_n as_o king_n at_o one_o hour_n with_o the_o beast_n furthermore_o this_o beast_n receive_v his_o throne_n and_o power_n from_o the_o dragon_n ver_fw-la 2._o who_o now_o before_o time_n have_v persecute_v the_o woman_n that_o be_v the_o christian_a church_n but_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n receive_v their_o throne_n and_o power_n from_o none_o especial_o which_o be_v before_o this_o time_n a_o chief_a enemy_n to_o the_o christian_a name_n see_v the_o emperor_n themselves_o be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n himself_o final_o the_o beast_n be_v of_o the_o same_o time_n that_o the_o flight_n be_v and_o solitariness_n of_o the_o woman_n but_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o dragon_n be_v together_o with_o he_o in_o heaven_n as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o chap_n 12.3_o but_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o work_n of_o nature_n which_o have_v his_o be_v before_o &_o after_o himself_o and_o be_v both_o the_o original_n to_o itself_o and_o the_o image_n thereof_o which_o must_v needs_o be_v if_o we_o refer_v this_o &_o the_o second_o beast_n to_o antichrist_n alone_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o nothing_o be_v before_o and_o after_o himself_o and_o both_o the_o original_n to_o himself_o and_o image_n thereof_o in_o the_o same_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n yet_o in_o one_o &_o the_o same_o man_n infancy_n go_v before_o old_a age_n and_o the_o latter_a age_n may_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o likeness_n of_o the_o former_a therefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o by_o no_o mean_n this_o beast_n be_v the_o roman_a heathenish_a empire_n much_o less_o the_o christian_n which_o in_o the_o throne_n do_v not_o succeed_v the_o dragon_n but_o always_o have_v his_o palace_n either_o in_o constantinople_n or_o in_o france_n or_o in_o germany_n neither_o do_v the_o whole_a earth_n follow_v with_o admiration_n the_o empire_n restore_v as_o in_o ver_fw-la 3._o nor_o receive_v his_o mark_n as_o in_o ver_fw-la 16._o but_o after_o the_o renew_n it_o be_v limit_v with_o small_a bound_n first_o of_o france_n italy_n and_o some_o part_n of_o germany_n second_o in_o short_a time_n after_o of_o germany_n alone_o have_v no_o jurisdiction_n over_o spain_n britanny_n hungary_n sclavonie_n and_o the_o other_o country_n which_o yet_o belong_v to_o the_o roman_a empire_n under_o another_o name_n neither_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o christian_a emperor_n to_o be_v such_o as_o he_o challenge_v to_o himself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o high_a magistrate_n in_o the_o country_n subject_n unto_o he_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o one_o appoint_v to_o destruction_n as_o in_o the_o 8._o verse_n for_o paul_n profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o roman_a and_o appeal_v to_o cesar_n act._n 25.10_o yea_o christ_n acknowledge_v the_o heathen_a emperor_n and_o command_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v obey_v by_o give_v to_o cesar_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v caesar_n mat._n 22.21_o see_v therefore_o it_o agree_v not_o at_o all_o to_o the_o emperor_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o antichrist_n be_v signify_v who_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n be_v describe_v under_o a_o double_a figure_n of_o two_o beast_n as_o may_v be_v manifest_a from_o the_o 17._o chap._n where_o there_o be_v teach_v a_o declaration_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o second_o but_o of_o the_o first_o only_a but_o why_o so_o i_o pray_v be_v it_o not_o needful_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v instruct_v touch_v the_o second_o who_o all_o man_n think_v to_o be_v either_o the_o very_a antichrist_n or_o at_o least_o his_o minister_n no_o better_o than_o himself_o not_o at_o all_o but_o because_o he_o that_o know_v one_o know_v both_o neither_o do_v the_o second_o make_v a_o other_o person_n but_o do_v pour_fw-fr ray_n the_o same_o image_n somewhat_o more_o plain_o set_v the_o colour_n upon_o the_o lineament_n and_o why_o shall_v not_o the_o beast_n be_v double_a when_o one_o antichrist_n be_v a_o double_a head_n the_o seven_o and_o eight_o of_o which_o that_o answer_v to_o this_o first_o beast_n this_o to_o the_o second_o the_o reason_n why_o a_o double_a type_n be_v use_v be_v the_o notable_a variety_n which_o can_v not_o be_v represent_v fit_o enough_o by_o one_o this_o beast_n have_v a_o double_a rise_n from_o the_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o earth_n he_o have_v also_o a_o double_a power_n civil_a and_o spiritual_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o civil_a he_o be_v the_o first_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o spiritual_a the_o second_o which_o double_a tyranny_n be_v most_o plain_a in_o the_o one_o pope_n of_o rome_n so_o as_o we_o can_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o be_v both_o the_o beast_n it_o be_v know_v how_o boniface_n the_o eight_o in_o his_o first_o jubilee_n vaunt_a himself_n open_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n one_o day_n come_v forth_o gird_v with_o a_o sword_n and_o clothe_v with_o a_o emperor_n corselet_n in_o the_o second_o day_n with_o a_o prelate_n apparel_n and_o with_o a_o key_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n behold_v here_o be_v two_o sword_n that_o be_v behold_v here_o be_v a_o double_a beast_n which_o double_a power_n mantuan_n do_v express_v by_o a_o elegant_a carme_n in_o these_o word_n he_o be_v mighty_a and_o very_o strong_a with_o the_o two_o sword_n gird_v magnificent_a keiser_n and_o king_n have_v his_o foot_n worship_v let_v then_o this_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o double_a beast_n be_v cause_n of_o a_o double_a beginning_n and_o power_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o so_o much_o celebrate_v by_o the_o word_n and_o mean_n of_o those_o of_o our_o side_n as_o by_o the_o pope_n themselves_o as_o it_o do_v more_o clear_o appear_v from_o the_o exposition_n follow_v a_o second_o thing_n be_v demand_v touch_v the_o time_n of_o his_o beginning_n which_o i_o think_v be_v to_o be_v set_v in_o the_o very_o give_v over_o of_o diocletian_a and_o maximin_n hercule_n when_o these_o two_o seem_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n to_o give_v over_o the_o empire_n about_o the_o year_n three_o hundred_o and_o sixth_o as_o before_o have_v be_v declare_v but_o because_o none_o peradventure_o fetch_v antichrist_n from_o that_o head_n spring_n and_o because_o bellarmine_n affirm_v that_o all_o our_o man_n do_v place_n the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n after_o the_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o after_o
destruction_n but_o let_v no_o godly_a man_n be_v offend_v if_o he_o see_v the_o reprobate_a to_o return_v to_o their_o beast_n the_o spirit_n have_v foreshow_v that_o this_o load_n stone_n shall_v draw_v unto_o it_o this_o refuse_n that_o hereafter_o they_o may_v not_o marvel_v why_o all_o of_o ungodly_a and_o dissolute_a life_n be_v more_o prone_a to_o the_o pope_n th●n_v to_o the_o truth_n ¶_o of_o that_o lamb_n which_o be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n without_o cause_n aretas_n will_v have_v a_o transposition_n of_o the_o word_n to_o be_v here_o so_o that_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o sense_n who_o name_n be_v not_o write_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n of_o the_o lamb_n which_o be_v slay_v he_o will_v have_v the_o name_n to_o be_v write_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n but_o not_o the_o lamb_n to_o have_v be_v kill_v from_o thence_o but_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o well_o divide_v which_o the_o spirit_n join_v together_o for_o if_o the_o lamb_n be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v also_o that_o he_o be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n but_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o lamb_n but_o for_o sacrifice_n neither_o can_v he_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n otherwise_o then_o by_o death_n as_o therefore_o by_o the_o eternal_a decree_n of_o god_n he_o be_v the_o lamb_n appoint_v for_o to_o save_v the_o elect_a so_o by_o the_o same_o decree_n he_o be_v slay_v from_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n whose_a force_n be_v no_o less_o available_a to_o deliver_v the_o elect_n before_o his_o death_n be_v accomplish_v in_o the_o flesh_n then_o after_o he_o have_v endure_v and_o suffer_v the_o same_o in_o the_o cross_n and_o in_o the_o grave_n 9_o let_v he_o that_o have_v a_o ear_n hear_v a_o acclamation_n the_o sense_n whereof_o be_v that_o this_o beast_n be_v to_o be_v know_v with_o all_o diligence_n howsoever_o there_o shall_v be_v many_a who_o will_v not_o hearken_v and_o will_v deny_v a_o thing_n so_o perverse_a be_v they_o more_o clear_a than_o the_o sun_n at_o noonetide_n but_o all_o you_o elect_v give_v ear_n and_o with_o as_o great_a diligence_n as_o you_o can_v fly_v from_o this_o plague_n which_o by_o these_o mark_n be_v so_o propose_v before_o your_o eye_n as_o that_o you_o may_v see_v she_o not_o as_o by_o the_o nail_n but_o by_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o her_o body_n 10_o if_o any_o lead_n into_o captivity_n these_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a who_o be_v to_o fight_v with_o this_o monster_n the_o first_o confirmation_n be_v take_v from_o a_o certain_a punishment_n which_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v although_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o beast_n mighty_a for_o a_o long_a time_n and_o carry_v many_o by_o company_n into_o bondage_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v of_o good_a courage_n for_o at_o length_n they_o shall_v see_v he_o also_o lead_v into_o captivity_n he_o shall_v perish_v with_o the_o sword_n although_o now_o he_o kill_v with_o the_o sword_n who_o he_o will_n the_o comfort_n be_v like_a to_o that_o in_o esay_n woe_n to_o thou_o that_o spoil_v who_o thyself_o be_v not_o spoil_v and_o to_o thou_o traitorous_a man_n against_o who_o they_o deal_v not_o traitorous_o when_o thou_o shall_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o spoiler_n thou_o shall_v be_v spoil_v etc._n etc._n chap._n 33.1_o ¶_o here_o be_v the_o patience_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o saint_n a_o second_o consolation_n all_o those_o thing_n serve_v for_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o constancy_n and_o sure_o a_o great_a courage_n be_v require_v in_o so_o great_a danger_n but_o by_o how_o much_o the_o danger_n shall_v be_v great_a so_o much_o the_o more_o shall_v the_o praise_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v bright_a therefore_o let_v no_o man_n quake_v for_o fear_n of_o the_o danger_n but_o let_v he_o mind_n that_o this_o beast_n be_v the_o occasion_n for_o he_o to_o get_v glory_n by_o 11_o afterward_o i_o see_v a_o other_o beast_n thus_o far_o of_o the_o first_o beast_n the_o second_o follow_v a_o other_o indeed_o in_o beginning_n and_o original_n but_o in_o nature_n and_o disposition_n altogether_o the_o same_o whereupon_o the_o seventeen_o chapter_n make_v mention_n of_o one_o only_a under_o one_o comprehend_v both_o as_o be_v observe_v at_o the_o five_o verse_n of_o this_o chap._n for_o which_o cause_n also_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o make_v a_o particular_a description_n of_o every_o member_n but_o rehearse_v those_o thing_n only_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o new_a rise_n other_o thing_n as_o far_o as_o it_o seem_v be_v common_a to_o this_o with_o the_o former_a first_o he_o ascend_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n both_o augment_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o earthly_a man_n and_o those_o of_o the_o laity_n as_o they_o call_v they_o who_o chief_o the_o earth_n signifi_v and_o also_o exceed_v in_o honour_n those_o very_a man_n by_o who_o he_o be_v advance_v for_o that_o which_o come_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n be_v lift_v up_o above_o the_o earth_n have_v it_o put_v under_o his_o foot_n by_o who_o weight_n he_o be_v late_o oppress_v so_o the_o former_a beast_n rise_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n have_v sea_n man_n put_v under_o he_o out_o of_o who_o company_n he_o come_v and_o plunge_v up_o this_o ascend_a fell_a out_o upon_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n second_o about_o the_o year_n 726_o when_o the_o pope_n trust_v in_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o longobarde_n smite_v with_o the_o lightning_n of_o excommunication_n leo_n isaurus_n the_o emperor_n and_o withdraw_v rome_n itself_o and_o italy_n and_o all_o hesperia_n from_o hi●_n obedience_n for_o now_o indeed_o the_o beast_n begin_v upon_o the_o earth_n who_o not_o only_o exercise_v a_o power_n over_o the_o ecclesiastical_a rout_n but_o also_o bridle_v the_o lie_v man_n by_o his_o authority_n &_o their_o chief_a head_n the_o emperor_n who_o although_o before_o time_n he_o have_v give_v a_o great_a power_n to_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o clergy_n yet_o he_o press_v down_o the_o same_o even_o till_o now_o by_o his_o majesty_n as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o certain_a weight_n more_o heavy_a they_o the_o hill_n aetna_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o lift_v up_o his_o crest_n above_o the_o emperor_n but_o now_o the_o earthly_a dignity_n yield_v to_o the_o beast_n to_o be_v tread_v under_o foot_n of_o he_o at_o length_n who_o grow_v up_o so_o far_o only_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n therefore_o zacharias_n the_o next_o that_o it_o may_v be_v manifest_a to_o all_o man_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v now_o loose_v from_o the_o prison_n of_o eart_o dignity_n depose_v childericke_n the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o command_v pipine_v the_o father_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a to_o be_v create_v king_n in_o his_o stead_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v more_o clear_a in_o leo_n the_o three_o who_o translate_v the_o empire_n from_o the_o grecian_n to_o the_o german_n and_o anoint_a charles_n the_o great_a for_o emperor_n what_o a_o more_o great_a proof_n can_v there_o be_v of_o the_o supreme_a power_n on_o earth_n then_o to_o take_v away_o the_o empire_n from_o who_o he_o will_v and_o to_o bestow_v the_o same_o again_o upon_o who_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a the_o pope_n follow_v persist_v in_o the_o same_o step_n esteem_v the_o emperor_n as_o it_o be_v ball_n in_o reject_v the_o same_o from_o their_o office_n and_o appoint_v other_o in_o their_o room_n at_o their_o pleasure_n whereby_o bellarmine_n be_v move_v write_v indeed_o true_o and_o agreeable_a to_o this_o prophecy_n all_o the_o emperor_n who_o have_v be_v since_o charles_n the_o great_a be_v bind_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o their_o empire_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n chap._n 8._o for_o ever_o since_o that_o time_n the_o beast_n rise_v up_o from_o the_o earth_n be_v high_a than_o all_o earthly_a power_n to_o which_o be_v add_v earthly_a dominion_n and_o possession_n of_o land_n join_v with_o this_o original_n which_o the_o pope_n before_o time_n either_o want_v altogether_o or_o at_o least_o enjoy_v but_o small_a &_o few_o as_o great_a as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o maintain_v a_o bishop_n not_o which_o shall_v make_v any_o show_n of_o a_o kingdom_n for_o in_o former_a age_n italy_n be_v tributary_n to_o the_o emperor_n which_o at_o length_n the_o goth_n possess_v make_v it_o to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o they_o when_o they_o be_v slay_v under_o justinian_n it_o return_v again_o to_o the_o empire_n administer_v by_o captain_n the_o roman_a pope_n have_v yet_o no_o province_n until_o this_o earthly_a rise_n up_o have_v give_v he_o land_n sufficient_o for_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o the_o pope_n by_o
who_o persuasion_n other_o man_n fall_v from_o the_o emperor_n and_o be_v make_v rich_a become_v not_o more_o enrich_v by_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o same_o will_v not_o he_o provide_v himself_o and_o saint_n peter_n of_o some_o little_a gobbet_n but_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a argument_n what_o he_o get_v thereby_o that_o a_o while_n after_o that_o the_o longobarde_n convert_v their_o force_n against_o the_o roman_n seek_v to_o take_v away_o from_o they_o those_o city_n of_o which_o they_o have_v spoil_v the_o emperor_n which_o be_v take_v away_o zachary_n the_o pope_n recover_v they_o again_o by_o fair_a flatter_a word_n with_o great_a increase_n if_o we_o must_v believe_v the_o papist_n for_o he_o obtain_v of_o luitprandus_fw-la by_o gift_n for_o bless_a peter_n and_o the_o pope_n beside_o a_o few_o city_n take_v away_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o sabins_n and_o the_o city_n narnia_n and_o ancona_n and_o humana_fw-la and_o the_o great_a valley_n of_o the_o town_n sutrium_n moreover_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o luitprandus_fw-la have_v take_v to_o himself_o from_o amilia_n and_o the_o people_n of_o r●venna_n within_o the_o space_n of_o two_o year_n blond_n decad._n 1._o book_n 10._o but_o without_o controversy_n the_o munificence_n of_o pipine_n and_o ch●rles_n the_o great_a and_o ludovike_o far_o surpass_v for_o romanie_n be_v now_o call_v a_o princedom_n that_o even_o by_o the_o very_a name_n it_o may_v acknowledge_v her_o lord_n therefore_o the_o beast_n begin_v now_o to_o glory_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n which_o boast_v before_o of_o the_o title_n of_o dignity_n and_o honour_n rather_o th●n_v in_o any_o possession_n of_o city_n and_o town_n ¶_o have_v two_o horn_n like_o the_o lamb_n these_o two_o horn_n be_v pipine_v and_o his_o son_n charl●s_n the_o great_a by_o who_o weapon_n as_o it_o be_v by_o horn_n the_o new_a beast_n chase_v far_o away_o all_o enemy_n pipine_n aid_v the_o pope_n stephan_n 2._o fly_v into_o france_n against_o aristulphus_fw-la the_o king_n of_o the_o longobarde_n who_o he_o pass_v twice_o over_o the_o alps_n with_o a_o army_n compel_v first_o to_o yield_v the_o thing_n take_v from_o the_o pope_n second_o to_o deliver_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n ravenna_n the_o princedoome_v and_o whatsoever_o almost_o he_o have_v take_v in_o italy_n see_v volat_fw-la book_n 3._o charles_n the_o great_a for_o pope_n adrian's_n sake_n repress_v desiderius_n king_n of_o the_o longobarde_n yea_o take_v away_o whole_o the_o kingdom_n from_o that_o nation_n that_o they_o may_v not_o afterward_o cause_v any_o trouble_n to_o rome_n moreover_o again_o when_o aragisus_fw-la a_o captain_n of_o beneventum_n put_v adrian_n in_o some_o fear_n he_o flee_v into_o italy_n bring_v he_o by_o constraint_n to_o his_o duty_n and_o set_v adrian_n free_a from_o all_o fear_n leo_fw-la the_o three_o also_o be_v expel_v by_o the_o roman_n haste_v into_o italy_n the_o three_o time_n those_o seditious_a be_v punish_v severe_o he_o restore_v he_o unto_o his_o chair_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n never_o have_v so_o great_a deffence_n since_o their_o ten_o first_o horn_n in_o any_o as_o in_o these_o two_o therefore_o these_o two_o notable_a horn_n make_v famous_a the_o original_n of_o this_o second_o beast_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v like_o the_o lamb_n because_o the_o pope_n who_o they_o aid_v do_v seem_v helpless_a afflict_a innocent_a like_o lamb_n how_o lamentable_a epistle_n do_v stephanus_n the_o second_o constantinus_n stephanus_n the_o three_o and_z adrian_z pope_n send_v to_o pipine_v and_o charles_n the_o great_a how_o full_o be_v all_o thing_n of_o complaint_n of_o lamentation_n of_o tear_n and_o of_o most_o vehement_a calling_n upon_o they_o for_o succour_v see_v before_o your_o eye_n what_o cruelty_n those_o letter_n do_v attribute_n to_o the_o enemy_n but_o what_o innocency_n to_o the_o bishop_n sure_o thou_o will_v call_v those_o wolf_n these_o lamb_n and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o hart_n of_o iron_n who_o will_v not_o deliver_v they_o be_v in_o danger_n from_o their_o most_o cruel_a ●awes_n if_o he_o be_v able_a yet_o nevertheless_o in_o this_o miserable_a estate_n the_o beast_n retain_v his_o former_a mind_n and_o lofty_o and_o terrible_o as_o the_o dragon_n i_o let_v pass_v gregory_n the_o second_o strike_v with_o lightning_n and_o terrify_v leo_n isaurus_n who_o voice_n i_o pray_v be_v it_o when_o zacharias_n take_v away_o the_o kingdom_n from_o the_o lawful_a king_n and_o bestow_v it_o upon_o pipine_v his_o servaunt_o what_o manner_n of_o voice_n be_v that_o of_o leo_n the_o three_o which_o proclaim_v open_o and_o consecrate_a charles_n emperor_n of_o the_o west_n be_v it_o not_o that_o of_o the_o old_a dragon_n who_o according_a to_o that_o very_a great_a power_n whereby_o he_o prevail_v make_v and_o depose_v king_n who_o he_o will_v desiderius_n the_o longobard_n feel_v the_o force_n of_o this_o voice_n who_o be_v allure_v by_o the_o lambelike_a show_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o enter_v quick_o into_o their_o possession_n for_o to_o recover_v whatsoever_o thing_n they_o have_v wrest_v away_o by_o fraud_n from_o his_o ancetour_n but_o this_o voice_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o while_o he_o strive_v for_o some_o one_o city_n or_o town_n he_o lose_v his_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o that_o not_o from_o himself_o but_o also_o the_o whole_a name_n of_o the_o longobarde_n these_o be_v wonderful_a great_a act_n of_o the_o earthly_a beast_n take_v away_o and_o bestow_v kingdom_n at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o that_o which_o be_v more_o not_o so_o much_o by_o arm_a force_n as_o by_o his_o voice_n by_o which_o he_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o the_o dragon_n although_o he_o bear_v yet_o the_o show_n of_o a_o tender_a lamb_n who_o be_v not_o able_a of_o himself_o to_o drive_v away_o the_o wolf_n from_o his_o own_o neck_n ¶_o and_o he_o exercise_v all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o former_a beast_n such_o be_v the_o rise_n and_o form_n of_o the_o beast_n his_o power_n be_v equal_a with_o the_o former_a a_o great_a proof_n whereof_o be_v give_v in_o this_o verse_n as_o touch_v the_o equal_a power_n whatsoever_o that_o first_o can_v do_v this_o second_o do_v exercise_v all_o the_o same_o in_o his_o sight_n but_o whence_o have_v he_o this_o so_o great_a power_n but_o from_o the_o dragon_n who_o give_v it_o to_o the_o first_o above_o in_o the_o second_o verse_n wherefore_o both_o be_v the_o same_o both_o for_o ampleness_n of_o power_n and_o also_o for_o the_o same_o author_n himself_o from_o who_o they_o receive_v it_o but_o as_o touch_v that_o some_o will_v have_v this_o second_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o chalbard_n man_n and_o esquire_n for_o the_o body_n of_o the_o former_a be_v it_o to_o be_v think_v that_o any_o be_v to_o be_v compare_v with_o antichrist_n either_o for_o power_n or_o will_v to_o do_v wickedness_n sure_o he_o shall_v have_v no_o fellow_n but_o he_o shall_v surmount_v all_o man_n in_o naughtiness_n and_o wickedness_n by_o many_o degree_n therefore_o this_o beast_n be_v not_o any_o servant_n of_o antichrist_n but_o he_o himself_o endue_v with_o no_o less_o power_n to_o do_v mischievous_a deed_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v they_o seem_v to_o be_v distinguish_v one_o of_o they_o work_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o other_o but_o this_o kind_n of_o speak_v show_v not_o a_o diversity_n of_o person_n but_o only_o that_o the_o first_o remain_v alive_a after_o that_o the_o wound_n be_v heal_v albeit_o they_o be_v worthy_o set_v as_o two_o divide_v because_o of_o the_o notable_a variety_n which_o the_o same_o person_n shall_v obtain_v in_o his_o grow_n in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v call_v both_o the_o seven_o &_o also_o the_o eight_o king_n chap._n 17._o not_o because_o there_o be_v eight_o king_n for_o there_o be_v only_o seven_o head_n but_o because_o the_o seven_o have_v so_o great_a diversity_n that_o for_o good_a cause_n he_o may_v seem_v a_o new_a one_o and_o the_o eight_o and_o if_o the_o second_o beast_n be_v diverse_a why_o will_v he_o procure_v honour_n rather_o to_o the_o former_a then_o to_o himself_o who_o have_v equal_a power_n and_o like_o notable_a lewdenes_n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o second_o consist_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o first_o which_o he_o thrust_v upon_o the_o inhabitans_fw-la of_o the_o earth_n with_o so_o great_a endeavour_n not_o so_o much_o through_o a_o desire_n to_o increase_v a_o other_o as_o his_o own_o glory_n ¶_o and_o he_o cause_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o inhabit●ns_n etc._n etc._n the_o effect_n of_o his_o power_n tend_v to_o that_o end_n that_o he_o may_v compel_v all_o false_a christian_n to_o worship_v the_o first_o beast_n which_o the_o spirit_n describe_v diligent_o by_o his_o deadly_a wound_n heal_v declare_v that_o this_o adoration_n agree_v not_o to_o
in_o this_o time_n for_o these_o be_v most_o sweet_a harp_n &_o that_o of_o god_n who_o string_n he_o have_v tune_v and_o with_o who_o melody_n he_o be_v much_o delit_v while_o the_o temple_n be_v shut_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o harper_n sound_v with_o sweet_a harmony_n when_o the_o church_n testify_v their_o consent_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o writing_n publish_v and_o offer_v to_o cesar_n as_o we_o have_v show_v on_o chap._n 14.2_o but_o now_o after_o the_o year_n 1558._o a_o much_o sweet_a symphony_n be_v make_v by_o the_o accession_n of_o the_o french_a english_a late_a helvetian_a belgian_n bohemian_n and_o scottish_a confession_n all_o these_o agreeable_o sing_v one_o tune_n together_o do_v make_v a_o most_o grateful_a song_n to_o godly_a ear_n but_o drive_v the_o enemy_n out_o of_o their_o wit_n 3_o and_o they_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n such_o a_o triumphal_a song_n as_o moses_n and_o the_o israelite_n sing_v of_o old_a when_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o egyptian_n exod._n 15._o for_o this_o deliverance_n out_o of_o the_o jaw_n of_o antichrist_n be_v of_o no_o less_o power_n and_o good_a will_n of_o god_n towards_o he_o than_o be_v that_o from_o pharaoh_n no_o marvel_n if_o the_o same_o benefit_n be_v celebrate_v with_o the_o same_o song_n it_o do_v not_o plain_o appear_v before_o these_o time_n what_o issue_n thing_n shall_v have_v the_o people_n be_v indeed_o go_v out_o of_o egypt_n but_o camp_v as_o yet_o before_o the_o jaw_n of_o chiroth_n and_o be_v perplex_v in_o the_o country_n close_v round_o about_o with_o the_o wilderness_n the_o pope_n &_o emperor_n make_v ready_a their_o charret_n and_o think_v to_o bring_v they_o back_o again_o to_o their_o ancient_a bondage_n but_o after_o that_o the_o sea_n have_v give_v way_n to_o the_o protestant_n in_o germany_n the_o emperor_n be_v by_o death_n drown_v with_o his_o charret_n and_o that_o their_o strength_n be_v more_o confirm_v by_o the_o come_n of_o england_n scotland_n netherlands_n unto_o they_o now_o be_v the_o time_n of_o sing_v to_o jehovah_n that_o he_o have_v excel_v glorious_o the_o harse_n and_o he_o that_o ride_v upon_o he_o he_o have_v overthrow_v in_o the_o sea_n ¶_o and_o the_o song_n of_o the_o lamb_n the_o same_o as_o i_o think_v which_o be_v mention_v before_o chap._n 4.3_o wherein_o they_o celebrate_v god_n the_o father_n for_o the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n in_o christ_n this_o joy_n of_o hart_n which_o figurative_o be_v call_v a_o song_n arise_v from_o the_o belief_n of_o christ_n justice_n impute_v unto_o we_o and_o the_o feel_n of_o that_o fatherly_a love_n wherewith_o god_n love_v we_o for_o this_o cause_n which_o always_o have_v be_v the_o song_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a in_o every_o time_n &_o place_n and_o namely_o of_o they_o that_o lie_v hide_v for_o 1260._o year_n chap._n 14._o but_o now_o at_o length_n be_v communicate_v with_o many_o more_o about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o last_o period_n &_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v mutter_v in_o corner_n but_o be_v sing_v without_o fear_n in_o all_o street_n &_o open_a place_n no_o song_n do_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n more_o hate_n he_o curse_v it_o with_o all_o direful_a execration_n but_o the_o wretch_n never_o taste_v the_o sweetness_n of_o it_o neither_o can_v any_o of_o his_o servant_n while_o so_o he_o persi_v learn_v the_o same_o ¶_o great_n &_o marv_v etc._n etc._n in_o deed_n great_a &_o beyond_o all_o expectation_n luther_n when_o he_o begin_v think_v nothing_o less_o they_o such_o a_o innovation_n &_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o who_o dare_v ever_o hope_n that_o the_o least_o part_n of_o his_o dignity_n can_v be_v throw_v down_o unto_o who_o foot_n so_o many_o emperor_n of_o old_a subject_a their_o neck_n a_o wonderful_a work_n very_o &_o far_o exceed_v the_o straigfht_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n lord_n god_n almighty_a god_n for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d o_o god_n or_o by_o want_n of_o a_o word_n to_o be_v supply_v which_o art_n god_n which_o be_v almighty_a ¶_o just_o and_o true_a etc._n etc._n just_o they_o be_v for_o he_o have_v do_v vengeance_n on_o the_o wicked_a true_a because_o that_o be_v now_o perform_v which_o be_v promise_v for_o in_o his_o holy_a word_n he_o have_v teach_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v well_o with_o the_o good_a &_o evil_a with_o the_o wicked_a according_a to_o which_o general_a promise_n &_o threat_n he_o govern_v the_o world_n manifest_v unto_o all_o his_o truth_n in_o perform_v the_o same_o 4_o for_o all_o nation_n shall_v come_v by_o this_o deliverance_n there_o shall_v arise_v to_o the_o faithful_a a_o more_o ample_a hope_n of_o the_o universal_a cal_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n a_o thing_n not_o now_o first_o signify_v but_o whereas_o a_o more_o plentiful_a knowledge_n shall_v increase_v daily_o in_o the_o late_a time_n in_o the_o age_n before_o because_o of_o the_o long_a delay_n &_o great_a difficulty_n of_o the_o thing_n at_o the_o expectation_n thereof_o lay_v quite_o dead_a but_o the_o thing_n be_v here_o but_o general_o touch_v &_o be_v after_o more_o large_o to_o be_v handle_v in_o due_a place_n ¶_o for_o thy_o judgement_n etc._n etc._n by_o these_o which_o thou_o have_v begin_v it_o may_v be_v manifest_a enough_o to_o every_o one_o what_o thou_o will_v do_v at_o last_o o_o rome_n why_o look_v thou_o not_o to_o thyself_o in_o time_n will_v thou_o not_o yet_o be_v wise_a before_o thy_o last_o destruction_n come_v when_o it_o will_v be_v too_o late_o do_v not_o these_o document_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n make_v manifest_a unto_o thou_o what_o he_o judge_v of_o thou_o remember_v pharaoh_n to_o who_o god_n judgment_n be_v manifest_v but_o he_o will_v not_o be_v instruct_v take_v heed_n lest_o thou_o walk_v in_o the_o same_o step_n fall_v not_o at_o last_o into_o the_o same_o pit_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d beside_o that_o signification_n of_o ceremony_n which_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n give_v unto_o it_o denote_v also_o a_o argument_n or_o example_n of_o justice_n see_v th._n beza_n on_o luk_n 1.6_o which_o signification_n agree_v fit_o to_o this_o place_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v argument_n of_o thy_o justice_n be_v manifest_v thou_o have_v open_o declare_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o thou_o be_v a_o most_o just_a judge_n 5_o and_o after_o these_o etc._n etc._n he_o now_o begin_v in_o special_a a_o more_o large_a declaration_n of_o the_o angel_n &_o first_o of_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v namely_o the_o temple_n open_v which_o be_v open_v ch_z 11.19_o &_o whereof_o mention_n be_v here_o make_v again_o as_o oft_o time_n come_v to_o pass_v because_o of_o the_o long_a commemoration_n of_o thing_n past_a which_o come_v between_o in_o 3_o whole_a chapter_n the_o temple_n before_o be_v shut_v as_o long_o as_o the_o woman_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n sometime_o there_o come_v angel_n out_o from_o thence_o but_o but_o the_o veil_n be_v hang_v at_o the_o door_n suffer_v none_o to_o look_v in_o whereupon_o it_o remain_v still_o hide_v to_o they_o that_o be_v without_o but_o now_o be_v open_a they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o court_n may_v look_v in_o if_o they_o will_n ¶_o the_o temple_n of_o &_o c_o hereby_o be_v mean_v the_o most_o holy_a place_n the_o two_o table_n of_o stone_n be_v call_v the_o testimony_n because_o of_o the_o law_n write_v in_o they_o which_o testify_v the_o will_n of_o god_n hereupon_o the_o ark_n have_v the_o same_o name_n because_o unto_o it_o these_o table_n be_v put_v and_o then_o the_o name_n more_o large_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o whole_a tabernacle_n in_o the_o inner_a place_n whereof_o the_o ark_n do_v reside_v num._n 17.23_o moreover_o that_o which_o be_v here_o say_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o testimony_n be_v open_v be_v the_o same_o in_o effect_n with_o this_o &_o the_o ark_n of_o his_o covenant_n be_v see_v in_o his_o temple_n chap._n 11.29_o the_o tabernacle_n seem_v to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o temple_n not_o because_o the_o law_n be_v always_o keep_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n which_o continue_v not_o to_o the_o end_n in_o the_o temple_n as_o neither_o do_v the_o ark_n after_o the_o overthrow_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o nabuchodonosor_n as_o the_o jesuite_n suppose_v for_o do_v not_o the_o tabernacle_n also_o loose_a the_o law_n when_o it_o lose_v the_o ark_n wherein_o the_o law_n be_v keep_v especial_o when_o the_o ark_n be_v never_o after_o place_v in_o that_o tabernacle_n 1_o sam._n 4.21_o this_o therefore_o be_v no_o sufficient_a cause_n but_o there_o two_o seem_v to_o be_v join_v together_o for_o to_o show_v that_o this_o temple_n be_v yet_o a_o pilgrim_n and_o the_o angel_n that_o come_v out_o from_o thence_o be_v burgess_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n but_o some_o man_n
man_n to_o blaspheme_v ver_fw-la 21._o scholion_n 1_o and_o i_o hear_v a_o great_a voice_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n in_o the_o commandment_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v whence_o the_o voice_n come_v to_o who_o and_o to_o what_o end_n it_o come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n as_o it_o do_v in_o chap._n 9.13_o from_o the_o four_o horn_n of_o the_o altar_n sometime_o from_o the_o throne_n as_o after_o in_o chap._n 19.5_o the_o difference_n be_v that_o the_o voice_n from_o the_o throne_n come_v as_o it_o be_v immediate_o from_o god_n from_o the_o temple_n when_o any_o thing_n be_v obtain_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n who_o here_o be_v say_v to_o command_v that_o we_o may_v know_v how_o great_a force_n faithful_a prayer_n have_v which_o as_o if_o they_o be_v author_n of_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v do_v so_o bold_o bid_v the_o matter_n to_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n and_o in_o deed_n it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o man_n enlighten_v with_o so_o great_a light_n of_o the_o truth_n shall_v not_o earnest_o strive_v with_o god_n in_o prayer_n to_o destroy_v antichrist_n very_o speedy_o aretas_n have_v not_o these_o word_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n but_o all_o our_o book_n agree_v as_o do_v also_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a and_o in_o other_o place_n it_o be_v usual_o tell_v whence_o any_o voice_n come_v they_o to_o who_o it_o come_v be_v the_o seven_o angel_n but_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o it_o may_n some_o say_v see_v they_o be_v appoint_v before_o unto_o this_o business_n and_o furnish_v with_o thing_n needful_a in_o the_o former_a chapter_n very_o they_o stand_v ready_a at_o the_o barriere_n and_o wait_v for_o a_o sign_n but_o unto_o a_o common_a commandment_n there_o must_v also_o come_v a_o special_a if_o any_o will_v have_v full_a power_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n for_o this_o therefore_o do_v they_o wait_v show_v that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o finger_n may_v be_v move_v without_o god_n will_n &_o providence_n whereby_o all_o thing_n be_v govern_v the_o commandment_n be_v that_o they_o go_v and_o power_n out_o their_o vial_n upon_o the_o earth_n but_o some_o of_o they_o be_v pour_v upon_o the_o sea_n river_n sun_n air_n it_o be_v true_a yet_o all_o their_o force_n redound_v upon_o the_o earth_n the_o other_o element_n have_v not_o a_o change_n for_o their_o own_o sake_n but_o to_o affect_v the_o earth_n thereby_o as_o that_o which_o be_v the_o common_a basin_n for_o the_o liquor_n pour_v out_o but_o how_o then_o be_v this_o proper_a ●o_o the_o first_o as_o the_o verse_n follow_v show_v which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o particular_a explication_n that_o the_o first_o belong_v indifferent_o to_o the_o common_a multitude_n of_o the_o inhabitans_fw-la of_o this_o earth_n the_o other_o unto_o some_o certain_a sort_n of_o chief_a note_n 2_o and_o the_o first_o go_v and_o pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o earth_n we_o have_v see_v the_o commandment_n now_o begin_v the_o particular_a execution_n where_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o work_n be_v the_o pour_v out_o of_o the_o vial_n upon_o the_o earth_n which_o word_n must_v not_o be_v take_v proper_o for_o the_o vial_n be_v not_o any_o material_a vessel_n nor_o full_a of_o very_a liquor_n but_o of_o god_n wrath_n as_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n ver_fw-la 7._o neither_o be_v the_o earth_n this_o ground_n which_o we_o tread_v upon_o but_o first_o it_o signify_v man_n and_o then_o not_o al●_n but_o antichrist_n mark_v servant_n only_o as_o the_o event_n straightway_o teach_v for_o there_o come_v a_o sore_n on_o the_o man_n that_o have_v the_o beast_n mark_v in_o which_o sense_n it_o have_v be_v often_o use_v before_o which_o we_o do_v therefore_o constant_o reteyn_a in_o all_o out_o explication_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v the_o better_o see_v how_o the_o whole_a pprophecy_n agree_v with_o itself_o the_o event_n give_v a_o noisome_a &_o grievous_a sore_n that_o be_v malignant_a and_o incurable_a as_o physician_n use_v to_o call_v it_o where_o there_o be_v so_o much_o rankle_v and_o venomous_a matter_n in_o it_o as_o it_o will_v never_o suffer_v it_o to_o heal_v up_o but_o neither_o be_v this_o a_o sore_n true_o and_o proper_o so_o call_v who_o procreant_a cause_n we_o see_v be_v figurative_o borrow_v and_o like_o event_n must_v we_o mind_v to_o be_v in_o the_o other_o vial_n also_o for_o to_o expound_v they_o according_a to_o strict_a property_n of_o speech_n as_o do_v the_o jesuite_n be_v not_o to_o explayn_n but_o rather_o to_o confound_v all_o thing_n so_o as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n shall_v never_o appear_v they_o which_o have_v this_o ulcer_n on_o they_o be_v man_n there_o come_v a_o ulcer_n against_o the_o man_n as_o the_o beza_n translate_v it_o or_o in_o the_o man_n as_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a say_v in_o homines_fw-la according_o to_o that_o phrase_n of_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2_o thes_n 2.4_o but_o the_o preposition_n with_o the_o four_o case_n signifi_v as_o if_o the_o boil_v torment_v they_o not_o so_o much_o by_o cleave_v in_o the_o body_n as_o by_o afflict_v it_o outward_o which_o do_v more_o agree_v to_o figure_v sore_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v those_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v against_o antichrist_n bondman_n which_o shall_v prick_v and_o vex_v they_o no_o less_o than_o noisome_a sore_n of_o what_o condition_n these_o man_n be_v be_v declare_v by_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o worship_v of_o his_o image_n we_o have_v show_v before_o chap._n 13.17_o from_o the_o threefold_a note_n wherewith_o the_o beast_n worshipper_n be_v sign_v that_o the_o first_o have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a &_o be_v call_v a_o character_n or_o mark_n the_o place_n whereof_o be_v in_o the_o right_a hand_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a note_n of_o his_o chief_a worshipper_n the_o noble_a man_n clerk_n scholar_n &c_n &c_n on_o who_o as_o upon_o prop_n the_o beast_n do_v chief_o lean_a wherefore_o these_o shall_v special_o be_v plague_v with_o this_o sore_n but_o not_o they_o only_a that_o have_v his_o mark_n but_o also_o they_o that_o worship_v his_o image_n and_o this_o be_v chief_o of_o the_o learned_a man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v wise_a than_o the_o common_a sort_n as_o be_v show_v on_o chap._n 14.9_o although_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o image_n be_v in_o some_o sort_n common_a to_o all_o chap._n 13.15_o and_o therefore_o shall_v this_o soar_v molest_v the_o whole_a crew_n of_o they_o yet_o special_o those_o which_o think_v they_o be_v furnish_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o antiquity_n for_o to_o give_v that_o honour_n to_o the_o beast_n but_o hence_o we_o may_v observe_v how_o it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o the_o first_o vial_n shall_v be_v alone_o with_o the_o first_o trumpet_n see_v the_o vial_n be_v pour_v only_o on_o this_o kind_n of_o man_n whereas_o there_o be_v not_o any_o such_o before_o the_o second_o beast_n who_o beginning_n be_v not_o ancient_a than_o the_o five_o trumpet_n which_o point_n we_o note_v on_o the_o first_o verse_n of_o the_o former_a chapter_n these_o thing_n thus_o explayn_v do_v all_o lead_n unto_o this_o that_o this_o ulcer_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o spite_n &_o envy_v than_o which_o not_o great_a torment_n can_v sicul●an_a tyrant_n feel_v as_o say_v the_o poet._n and_o herewith_o be_v the_o papist_n marvellous_o torment_v when_o the_o vial_n be_v pour_v out_o which_o sickness_n be_v right_o call_v a_o ulcer_n the_o nature_n whereof_o it_o resemble_v by_o a_o twofold_a accident_n for_o it_o force_v they_o that_o be_v trouble_v therewith_o to_o keep_v in_o and_o not_o come_v abroad_o so_o that_o they_o flee_v the_o sight_n of_o they_o for_o who_o prosperity_n they_o be_v strike_v sick_a as_o of_o old_a the_o egyptian_n who_o together_o with_o their_o sorcerer_n have_v by_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o the_o ash_n so_o many_o blister_v all_o over_o they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o stand_v before_o moses_n exod._n 9.10.11_o then_o also_o in_o private_a they_o be_v so_o afraid_a to_o be_v touch_v that_o they_o use_v all_o the_o mean_n they_o may_v to_o keep_v the_o sore_n lest_o it_o be_v squise_v which_o kind_n of_o evil_n come_v upon_o the_o man_n that_o bear_v the_o beast_n badge_n straight_o after_o the_o open_n of_o the_o temple_n chap._n 11.19_o to_o which_o these_o vial_n as_o i_o have_v show_v be_v to_o be_v join_v which_o the_o repetition_n of_o thing_n past_a have_v sever_v with_o so_o long_a a_o space_n between_o namely_o about_o the_o year_n 1560_o where_o the_o former_a prophecy_n cease_v for_o than_o our_o gracious_a q._n elizabeth_n be_v bid_v by_o the_o voice_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n to_o power_n out_o her_o vial_n upon_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v be_v admonish_v by_o
that_o alexander_n himself_o never_o boast_v of_o any_o such_o wonder_n in_o his_o epistle_n arianus_n write_v that_o usual_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o pass_v through_o the_o sea_n near_o phaselis_n but_o when_o the_o north_n wind_n blow_v which_o blow_v vehement_o when_o alexander_n go_v that_o way_n that_o they_o seem_v not_o without_o god_n power_n to_o have_v yield_v they_o a_o easy_a passage_n but_o strabo_n book_n 14_o write_v most_o plain_o that_o the_o soldier_n traveil_v all_o the_o day_n even_o up_o to_o the_o navel_n in_o the_o water_n so_o then_o alexander_n pass_v through_o the_o water_n that_o be_v shollow_v and_o not_o quite_o dry_v up_o neither_o do_v i_o think_v can_v it_o be_v find_v in_o any_o record_n that_o such_o a_o thing_n do_v ever_o happen_v to_o any_o other_o people_n than_o the_o jew_n the_o vanity_n of_o writer_n may_v feign_v many_o thing_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v challenge_v this_o as_o peculiar_a to_o this_o nation_n only_o i_o will_v say_v say_v god_n to_o the_o deep_a be_v dry_a and_o i_o will_v dry_v up_o thy_o flood_n isa_n 44.27_o and_o again_o be_v not_o thou_o the_o same_o which_o dry_v up_o the_o sea_n even_o the_o water_n of_o the_o great_a deep_a make_v the_o deep_n of_o the_o sea_n to_o be_v a_o way_n for_o the_o redeem_v to_o pass_v over_o isa_n 51.10_o and_o lest_o some_o shall_v think_v this_o miracle_n be_v only_o for_o the_o time_n pass_v and_o not_o such_o to_o be_v look_v for_o ever_o after_o he_o add_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n so_o the_o redeem_v of_o the_o lord_n shall_v return_v and_o come_v with_o joy_n into_o zion_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o isa_n 63.11_o where_o shall_v he_o be_v that_o bring_v these_o up_o out_o of_o the_o sea_n with_o the_o shepherd_n of_o his_o flock_n which_o cleave_v the_o water_n for_o th●se_a to_o make_v himself_o a_o everlasting_a name_n which_o lead_v these_o through_o the_o deep_a as_o a_o horse_n in_o the_o wilderness_n so_o that_o they_o stumble_v not_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o the_o peculiar_a note_n &_o ensign_n of_o this_o nation_n only_o be_v put_v for_o the_o man_n themselves_o but_o what_o need_v there_o a_o way_n to_o be_v prepare_v for_o they_o shall_v they_o return_v again_o to_o jerusalem_fw-la there_o be_v nothing_o more_o sure_a the_o prophet_n plain_o confirm_v it_o and_o beat_v often_o upon_o it_o yet_o not_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n shall_v be_v restore_v but_o that_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n may_v shine_v unto_o all_o the_o world_n in_o give_v to_o a_o nation_n now_o scatter_v over_o all_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o dwell_v no_o where_n but_o by_o leave_n their_o father_n habitation_n wherein_o they_o shall_v serve_v christ_n pure_o and_o sincere_o according_a to_o his_o own_o ordinance_n only_o a_o thing_n of_o old_a common_o speak_v of_o by_o the_o ancient_a jew_n which_o they_o understand_v by_o the_o prophet_n although_o but_o narrow_o and_o through_o the_o lattisse_n whereupon_o it_o be_v beray_v with_o old_a wife_n fable_n both_o in_o age_n past_a and_o so_o be_v now_o at_o this_o day_n the_o feighn_v esdras_n see_v some_o sparkle_n of_o this_o truth_n which_o he_o overwhelm_v with_o so_o many_o and_o great_a fiction_n that_o he_o have_v need_n be_v a_o wary_a and_o attentive_a reader_n and_o one_o of_o no_o mean_a judgement_n that_o will_v gather_v gold_n out_o of_o that_o confuse_a heap_n they_o enter_v in_o say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n that_o be_v lead_v captive_n at_o the_o narrow_a passage_n of_o the_o river_n euphrates_n for_o the_o most_o high_a than_o show_v they_o sign_n and_o stay_v the_o spring_n of_o the_o river_n till_o they_o be_v pass_v over_o 4._o esdras_n 13.43.44_o a_o jewish_a fable_n but_o near_a to_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o which_o there_o follow_v ver_fw-la 47._o the_o most_o high_a shall_v hold_v still_o the_o spring_n of_o the_o river_n again_o that_o they_o may_v go_v through_o etc._n etc._n which_o agree_v with_o this_o place_n &_o may_v both_o of_o they_o be_v understand_v metaphorical_o though_o nothing_o let_v why_o it_o may_v not_o please_v god_n again_o to_o show_v his_o ancient_a power_n of_o dry_a water_n up_o extraordinary_o see_v therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o nation_n shall_v earnest_o flock_v unto_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o in_o the_o last_o time_n as_o paul_n teach_v rom._n 11.25_o and_o the_o last_o period_n of_o thing_n be_v of_o the_o vial_n &_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o such_o a_o wonderful_a matter_n shall_v have_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o in_o this_o clear_a prophecy_n unto_o which_o also_o here_o be_v add_v the_o proper_a ensign_n of_o this_o nation_n for_o who_o only_a sake_n both_o sea_n &_o river_n as_o we_o read_v be_v dry_v up_o i_o be_o not_o altogether_o unadvised_a in_o suppose_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a matter_n here_o in_o hand_n which_o must_v either_o be_v find_v in_o this_o place_n or_o be_v whole_o omit_v in_o this_o book_n wherefore_o after_o rome_n be_v overthrow_v and_o cut_v off_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o common_a bruit_n of_o this_o new_a christian_a people_n at_o the_o hear_n whereof_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v astonish_v but_o what_o be_v the_o jew_n king_n why_o not_o see_v all_o christian_n be_v king_n rev._n 1.6_o and_o the_o fowr_n and_o twenty_o elder_n which_o represente_a the_o whole_a company_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v all_o wear_v crown_n chap._n 4.4_o and_o this_o magnificent_a name_n do_v the_o spirit_n give_v they_o because_o it_o shall_v be_v very_o honourable_a after_o so_o many_o age_n and_o so_o stiff_a stubbornness_n of_o that_o nation_n for_o they_o to_o come_v again_o as_o it_o be_v by_o recovery_n of_o law_n unto_o the_o truth_n and_o religious_o and_o holy_o with_o all_o observance_n to_o honour_v the_o same_o have_v their_o incredulous_a and_o obstinate_a heart_n subdue_v but_o beside_o this_o the_o whole_a east_n shall_v obey_v they_o that_o not_o without_o cause_n be_v this_o people_n call_v king_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o long_a and_o large_a dominion_n &_o empire_n but_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v call_v plain_o king_n in_o isay_n 24.21_o if_o we_o diligent_o mark_v the_o word_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o place_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v he_o in_o that_o day_n the_o lord_n will_v visit_v the_o host_n of_o the_o high_a in_o the_o high_a place_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v gather_v with_o a_o gather_n as_o a_o prisoner_n into_o a_o pit_n and_o shall_v be_v close_v up_o in_o the_o close-place_n and_o after_o many_o day_n shall_v they_o be_v visit_v and_o the_o moon_n shall_v be_v abash_v and_o the_o sun_n ashamed_a when_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n shall_v reign_v in_o mount_n zion_n and_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o shall_v be_v glorious_a before_o his_o ancient_n &_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v all_o one_o who_o after_o be_v gather_v into_o the_o pit_n after_o many_o day_n be_v visit_v and_o at_o who_o deliverance_n the_o moon_n be_v abash_v etc._n etc._n which_o last_o word_n be_v certain_o mean_v of_o the_o full_a restore_n of_o the_o jew_n wherefore_o the_o first_o word_n intend_v also_o the_o same_o who_o god_n in_o heavy_a indignation_n because_o they_o refuse_v his_o son_n do_v thrust_v into_o the_o pit_n or_o dungeon_n for_o many_o age_n together_o and_o keep_v they_o close_v up_o in_o a_o very_a hard_a prison_n but_o at_o length_n after_o many_o day_n he_o will_v visit_v these_o prisoner_n and_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o gayl_n for_o who_o fervent_a zele_n and_o singular_a study_n of_o true_a godliness_n the_o churchche_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o the_o moon_n &_o sun_n shall_v be_v abash_v at_o this_o great_a brightness_n they_o be_v call_v the_o host_n of_o the_o high_a in_o the_o high_a because_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o peculiar_a people_n of_o the_o high_a god_n and_o of_o his_o church_n which_o be_v heavenly_a whereupon_o they_o be_v often_o call_v in_o daniel_n qaddische_a hheljonin_n the_o saint_n of_o the_o high_a dan._n 7.22_o etc._n etc._n but_o this_o be_v enough_o to_o find_v out_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n i_o may_v not_o now_o stand_v long_o upon_o it_o i_o have_v handle_v it_o the_o more_o at_o large_a for_o to_o give_v occasion_n unto_o our_o man_n to_o mind_v these_o thing_n more_o diligent_o these_o king_n come_v from_o the_o east_n because_o the_o great_a multitude_n of_o jew_n be_v in_o those_o country_n and_o these_o first_o of_o all_o shall_v see_v the_o truth_n and_o embrace_v the_o study_n of_o it_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v the_o temple_n be_v shut_v until_o the_o seven_o plague_n be_v fufil_v which_o we_o show_v to_o be_v
be_v new_a rome_n new_a babylon_n to_o weet_v constantinople_n for_o every_o mighty_a proud_a idolatrous_a bloody_a impious_a city_n may_v be_v call_v babylon_n but_o special_o next_o after_o rome_n constantinople_n the_o only_a daughter_n and_o heyr_n unto_o a_o farthing_n of_o her_o mother_n rome_n who_o natural_a disposition_n as_o she_o draw_v by_o stock_n so_o do_v she_o deserve_o take_v the_o name_n be_v call_v new_a rome_n and_o sure_o it_o seem_v the_o same_o order_n of_o thing_n shall_v be_v here_o first_o that_o all_o the_o turkish_a &_o popish_a force_n shall_v be_v beat_v down_o and_o destroy_v second_o that_o all_o the_o confederate_a city_n &_o province_n if_o they_o also_o do_v not_o quite_o perish_v shall_v yet_o at_o least_o be_v under_o new_a governor_n three_o that_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o turk_n this_o babylon_n shall_v bear_v the_o just_a punishment_n of_o her_o impiety_n and_o it_o may_v be_v the_o west_n christian_n after_o that_o the_o pope_n name_n be_v extinguish_v and_o that_o the_o turk_n be_v overthrow_v in_o the_o east_n will_v show_v forth_o their_o wrath_n on_o constantinople_n and_o execute_v the_o judgement_n mention_v in_o this_o place_n by_o which_o now_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o all_o our_o enterprise_n against_o the_o turk_n shall_v be_v vain_a until_o rome_n be_v overthrow_v for_o she_o at_o the_o first_o call_v for_o the_o turk_n as_o we_o have_v learn_v from_o chap._n 9.20.21_o nor_o shall_v his_o scourge_n be_v remove_v till_o the_o cause_n be_v quite_o take_v away_o but_o after_o that_o the_o beast_n throne_n be_v consume_v with_o fire_n &_o the_o last_o popish_a war_n be_v do_v then_o shall_v this_o horrible_a tyrant_n without_o any_o trouble_n of_o we_o be_v thrust_v down_o into_o hell_n neither_o shall_v we_o ever_o need_v to_o fear_v any_o more_o molestation_n from_o any_o relic_n of_o he_o ¶_o came_n in_o remembrance_n before_o god_n now_o both_o the_o cause_n be_v mention_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o constantinopolitan_a babylon_n and_o the_o punishment_n which_o shall_v be_v inflict_v on_o it_o the_o cause_n be_v god_n remembrance_n who_o be_v say_v to_o remember_v both_o for_o mercy_n and_o for_o judgement_n when_o he_o perform_v in_o deed_n what_o he_o decree_v to_o be_v do_v so_o long_o as_o he_o defer_v vengeance_n and_o wrath_n he_o seem_v to_o forget_v and_o to_o have_v no_o care_n or_o respect_n of_o our_o affair_n and_o action_n and_o this_o do_v very_o well_o express_v the_o horrible_a cruelty_n of_o this_o babylon_n where_o with_o god_n suffer_v they_o that_o be_v call_v christian_n to_o be_v press_v &_o do_v not_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n punish_v the_o adversary_n nor_o yield_v any_o defence_n from_o injury_n who_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n turn_v away_o his_o eye_n from_o behold_v our_o misery_n when_o without_o punishment_n he_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v beat_v rob_v vex_v with_o all_o reproach_n and_o contumely_n virgin_n &_o wife_n to_o be_v defile_v whole_a flock_n of_o man_n to_o be_v carry_v bind_v and_o chain_v into_o bondage_n infant_n to_o be_v pluck_v from_o the_o breast_n for_o to_o be_v instruct_v in_o mahumetish_a blasphemy_n and_o the_o parent_n to_o know_v that_o they_o bring_v forth_o child_n unto_o eternal_a destruction_n who_o i_o say_v mind_v these_o and_o many_o more_o thing_n all_o which_o idolatry_n have_v bring_v upon_o we_o may_v not_o worthy_o say_v that_o god_n have_v quite_o forget_v our_o misery_n he_o wink_v therefore_o at_o babylon_n wickedness_n that_o he_o may_v drive_v she_o to_o increase_v calamity_n on_o the_o man_n which_o will_v be_v teach_v by_o no_o warning_n and_o at_o length_n when_o our_o man_n impiety_n shall_v cease_v the_o shop_n thereof_o be_v burn_v and_o consume_v he_o will_v cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o babylon_n and_o call_v to_o mind_v all_o her_o wickedness_n for_o to_o measure_n meet_v punishment_n unto_o she_o but_o thou_o may_v observe_v that_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o exaggerate_v the_o iniquity_n of_o this_o city_n with_o so_o many_o word_n as_o her_o mother_n rome_n because_o the_o sin_n of_o hethen_a man_n although_o they_o be_v very_o heavy_a be_v light_a than_o they_o that_o abuse_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o touch_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v remember_v be_v use_v passive_o as_o act._n 10.31_o so_o also_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v give_v etc._n etc._n the_o punishment_n shall_v be_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o feircenes_n of_o wrath_n a_o cup_n be_v a_o part_n or_o portion_n as_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o part_n of_o my_o portion_n and_o of_o my_o cup_n psal_n 16.5_o &_o 11.6_o a_o metaphor_n take_v from_o governor_n of_o feast_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o part_v unto_o every_o one_o that_o which_o he_o shall_v drink_v whereupon_o homer_n mention_v a_o distribute_v drink_v iliad_n d._n like_o unto_o which_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n inflict_v on_o every_o man_n in_o just_a weight_n and_o measure_n and_o judgement_n be_v a_o cup_n of_o wine_n because_o they_o shall_v be_v as_o pleasant_a to_o god_n as_o wickedness_n be_v to_o the_o man_n that_o be_v he_o will_v take_v delight_n in_o destroy_v they_o as_o chap._n 14.10_o unless_o it_o be_v therefore_o of_o wine_n because_o the_o severity_n shall_v take_v all_o sense_n from_o babylon_n as_o over_o much_o quaff_n in_o of_o wine_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v whereupon_o she_o shall_v no_o more_o escape_v the_o evil_a than_o a_o man_n that_o have_v lose_v his_o sense_n through_o drunkenness_n in_o which_o respect_n it_o be_v say_v in_o zachary_n i_o will_v make_v jerusalem_n as_o a_o cup_n that_o cause_v slumber_n and_o i_o will_v smite_v every_o horse_n with_o stonishment_n and_o his_o rider_n with_o madness_n zach._n 12.2.4_o and_o this_o heap_v together_o of_o the_o feircenes_n of_o his_o wrath_n signifi_v grievous_a and_o most_o sharp_a punishement_n although_o it_o be_v not_o show_v express_o whither_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n as_o old_a rome_n be_v before_o it_o be_v very_o like_a that_o after_o the_o great_a calamity_n which_o it_o shall_v suffer_v the_o city_n itself_o shall_v still_o remain_v possess_v of_o christian_n and_o always_o thenceforth_o shall_v obey_v unto_o they_o 20_o and_o every_o i_o will_v flee_v we_o have_v see_v the_o calamity_n of_o the_o city_n and_o next_o province_n these_o word_n now_o respect_v the_o nation_n further_o off_o who_o distance_n of_o place_n shall_v help_v nothing_o at_o al._n this_o desolation_n shall_v pass_v over_o the_o sea_n and_o consume_v they_o in_o their_o land_n nor_o shall_v it_o ought_v avayl_v they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o firm_a mountain_n for_o these_o also_o shall_v be_v pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n and_o perish_v for_o ever_o as_o before_o in_o chap._n 6.14_o notwithstanding_o this_o trouble_n shall_v be_v far_o heavy_a than_o that_o for_o there_o the_o mountain_n and_o isle_n be_v only_o move_v out_o of_o their_o place_n here_o they_o be_v so_o utter_o abolish_v as_o no_o footstep_n of_o they_o do_v remain_v but_o a_o i_o will_v in_o this_o place_n be_v not_o only_o a_o land_n compass_v roundabout_a by_o the_o sea_n but_o also_o the_o continent_n or_o main_a land_n after_o the_o hebrew_n manner_n which_o call_v all_o country_n beyond_o the_o sea_n land_n psal_n 72.10_o and_o so_o it_o comprise_v egypt_n also_o and_o africa_n 21_o and_o a_o great_a hail_n as_o of_o talon_n weight_n hitherto_o have_v be_v the_o calamity_n of_o the_o place_n now_o on_o the_o man_n it_o rain_v hail_n of_o talon_n weight_n as_o of_o old_a in_o jos_n 10.11_o and_o as_o they_o flee_v from_o before_o jsrael_n and_o be_v in_o the_o go_n down_o to_o beth-horon_a the_o lord_n cast_v down_o great_a stone_n from_o heaven_n upon_o they_o until_o azekah_n and_o there_o die_v more_o of_o they_o that_o die_v with_o the_o hail_n stone_n than_o they_o who_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n slay_v with_o the_o sword_n but_o here_o he_o speak_v of_o stone_n of_o huge_a bigness_n which_o will_v not_o only_o be_v enough_o to_o kill_v but_o also_o to_o crush_v the_o man_n to_o powder_n for_o never_o before_o be_v there_o see_v or_o hear_v such_o a_o horrible_a vengeance_n as_o this_o shall_v be_v ¶_o and_o the_o man_n blaspheme_v god_n the_o effect_n of_o all_o these_o as_o touch_v the_o reprobate_n who_o yet_o will_v spew_v out_o their_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n this_o therefore_o be_v not_o the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n when_o the_o wicked_a shall_v with_o their_o approbation_n subscribe_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o law_n and_o say_v amen_n acknowledge_v their_o condemnation_n to_o be_v most_o just_a deut._n 27.15_o etc._n etc._n but_o there_o shall_v still_o remain_v some_o wicked_a one_o in_o the_o
they_o which_o of_o late_o triumph_v as_o conqueror_n now_o the_o case_n be_v alter_v be_v overcome_v mauritius_n put_v to_o flight_v the_o emperor_n and_o at_o length_n compel_v he_o to_o grant_v liberty_n to_o true_a religion_n as_o we_o say_v in_o chapter_n 11_o 11.12_o this_o free_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o victory_n which_o the_o lamb_n wrong_v from_o the_o emperor_n against_o his_o will_n and_o not_o from_o he_o alone_o but_o also_o from_o the_o rest_n which_o follow_v ferdinandus_n maximilianus_n rodulphus_fw-la who_o see_v that_o they_o kick_v in_o vain_a against_o the_o prick_n cause_v no_o trouble_n to_o the_o reform_a religion_n i_o will_v to_o god_n at_o length_n the_o emperor_n will_v set_v forth_o the_o victory_n of_o the_o lamb_n not_o only_o by_o resist_v but_o also_o by_o detest_a the_o romish_a imposture_n and_o by_o embrace_v the_o wholesome_a truth_n itself_o why_o mind_v he_o not_o that_o he_o now_o follow_v unwares_o the_o lamb_n chariot_n for_o it_o happen_v not_o by_o chance_n but_o belong_v to_o a_o mighty_a conqueror_n to_o make_v great_a state_n of_o a_o realm_n favourable_a to_o his_o church_n but_o whether_o be_v it_o not_o better_o to_o accompany_v the_o triumphant_a chariot_n a_o fellow_n and_o partaker_n of_o the_o victory_n than_o a_o prisoner_n and_o miserable_a spectacle_n of_o the_o discomfiture_n receive_v god_n open_v his_o eye_n that_o in_o reward_v the_o whore_n from_o his_o virtue_n he_o first_o of_o the_o horn_n may_v receive_v the_o price_n of_o that_o victory_n which_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o regard_v nevertheless_o some_o other_o shall_v have_v it_o short_o ¶_o and_o they_o which_o be_v with_o he_o called_z and_o choose_v faithful_a the_o christian_a sauldier_n mauritius_n and_o the_o army_n of_o the_o protestant_n by_o which_o the_o lamb_n get_v the_o victory_n for_o it_o please_v he_o not_o by_o send_v fire_n from_o heaven_n to_o overcome_v the_o enemy_n by_o his_o own_o power_n alone_o but_o by_o the_o labour_n of_o his_o faithful_a servant_n so_o then_o we_o have_v these_o horn_n declare_v by_o this_o war_n no_o less_o notable_a mark_n towards_o their_o end_n than_o the_o number_n of_o ten_o be_v at_o their_o beginning_n so_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_n be_v know_v here_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n of_o the_o other_o race_n that_o come_v between_o 15_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o the_o water_n which_o thou_o see_v hitherto_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o of_o the_o whore_n follow_v and_o first_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a dominion_n &_o the_o same_o flourish_a in_o this_o verse_n water_n which_o he_o mention_v in_o the_o first_o verse_n he_o expound_v to_o be_v people_n multitudes_z nation_n and_o tongue_n that_o be_v nation_n of_o every_o tongue_n obey_v rome_n the_o empress_n so_o the_o prophet_n be_v wont_a to_o signify_v a_o great_a multitude_n of_o people_n as_o water_n do_v come_v up_o from_o the_o north_n and_o become_v a_o swell_a flood_n jer._n chap._n 47.2_o and_o of_o right_n do_v they_o attribute_v this_o name_n unto_o they_o because_o of_o the_o notable_a variety_n inconstancy_n and_o often_o change_v of_o their_o opinion_n as_o of_o wave_n toss_v with_o the_o wind_n who_o troublous_a motion_n be_v great_a then_o of_o any_o arm_n or_o straigth_n of_o the_o sea_n as_o say_v the_o orator_n these_o therefore_o be_v the_o water_n of_o the_o whore_n rule_v far_o and_o near_o what_o kind_n of_o dominion_n she_o have_v once_o while_o her_o age_n &_o favour_n be_v flourish_v in_o the_o last_o time_n when_o old_a age_n shall_v disfigure_v her_o forehead_n with_o wrinkle_n they_o shall_v become_v far_o more_o shallow_a &_o narrow_a as_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n ¶_o where_o the_o whore_n sit_v that_o be_v upon_o which_o the_o whore_n sit_v as_o in_o the_o first_o verse_n but_o nation_n &_o tongue_n be_v say_v two_o for_o one_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v nation_n of_o divers_a tongue_n 16_o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v on_o the_o beast_n now_o he_o come_v to_o the_o afflict_a condition_n of_o the_o whore_n declare_v by_o who_o it_o shall_v be_v bring_v upon_o she_o and_o how_o to_o which_o he_o add_v a_o common_a cause_n the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o the_o next_o verse_n as_o touch_v the_o word_n in_o stead_n of_o upon_o the_o beast_n the_o compl._n edition_n which_o montanus_n and_o plantine_n follow_v do_v read_v and_o the_o beast_n as_o if_o the_o beast_n himself_o at_o length_n shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n contrary_a unto_o aretas_n read_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a and_o theod._n beza_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o very_a many_o copy_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n contrary_a to_o the_o manifest_a truth_n for_o by_o the_o desolation_n of_o the_o whore_n which_o he_o foreshow_v here_o the_o spirit_n understand_v that_o calamity_n that_o shall_v be_v bring_v upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n by_o the_o vial_n pour_v out_o upon_o his_o throne_n chap._n 16.10.11_o therefore_o how_o can_v the_o beast_n show_v himself_o a_o helper_n for_o to_o abolish_v and_o root_v out_o the_o whore_n as_o it_o follow_v from_o the_o false_a read_n who_o fall_n he_o shall_v take_v so_o grievous_o and_o immoderate_o that_o he_o shall_v gnaw_v his_o tongue_n for_o exceed_v great_a grief_n furthermore_o john_n see_v the_o woman_n sit_v upon_o the_o beast_n at_o what_o time_n she_o come_v forth_o to_o condemnation_n and_o punishment_n when_o then_o shall_v be_v this_o separate_n of_o company_n which_o they_o will_v have_v when_o so_o great_a a_o concord_n remain_v even_o to_o the_o last_o destruction_n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n which_o bellarmine_n endevour_v to_o establish_v from_o this_o place_n that_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n because_o antichrist_n shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n which_o he_o grant_v to_o be_v rome_n for_o he_o shall_v not_o hate_v say_v he_o his_o own_o seat_n but_o the_o whole_a assumption_n be_v manifest_o false_a and_o lean_v upon_o no_o other_o thing_n than_o a_o corrupt_a read_n but_o why_o dare_v he_o now_o depart_v from_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a which_o with_o so_o great_a praise_n he_o extoll_v elsewhere_o and_o the_o council_n have_v decree_v to_o be_v authentical_a alone_o the_o force_n of_o the_o truth_n have_v compel_v he_o to_o seek_v all_o corner_n which_o if_o by_o any_o mean_n he_o can_v avoid_v he_o know_v pardon_n will_v easy_o be_v get_v of_o the_o council_n wherefore_o they_o which_o shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n be_v the_o ten_o horn_n not_o the_o beast_n together_o with_o they_o for_o the_o relative_a of_o the_o neuter_a antecedent_n be_v masculine_a because_o by_o these_o horn_n man_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v but_o as_o in_o the_o war_n against_o the_o lamb_n that_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o ten_o king_n which_o be_v do_v only_o by_o the_o labour_n of_o one_o ver_fw-la 14._o so_o all_o be_v say_v to_o hate_v the_o whore_n and_o at_o length_n to_o torment_v she_o with_o the_o last_o slaughter_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v peradventure_o the_o commendation_n of_o one_o of_o these_o for_o there_o be_v not_o wont_a to_o be_v many_o emperor_n together_o of_o the_o same_o dominion_n and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o even_o at_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o ten_o first_o emperor_n be_v famous_a for_o good_a will_n towards_o the_o pope_n so_o contrariwise_o nigh_o his_o end_n the_o ten_o last_o shall_v be_v for_o a_o certain_a peculiar_a hatred_n to_o the_o whore_n the_o last_o whereof_o shall_v burn_v she_o with_o fire_n but_o i_o say_v the_o last_o not_o as_o though_o they_o shall_v cease_v when_o the_o pope_n cease_v but_o because_o they_o shall_v be_v no_o long_o his_o horn_n who_o now_o they_o be_v count_v from_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o turk_n be_v not_o he_o by_o who_o rome_n shall_v utter_o perish_v but_o one_o of_o the_o emperor_n to_o who_o these_o horn_n agree_v in_o beginning_n progress_n and_o end_n neither_o indeed_o will_v the_o turk_n if_o he_o know_v to_o provide_v for_o himself_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o rome_n as_o long_o as_o she_o shall_v continue_v safe_a our_o army_n shall_v do_v he_o no_o harm_n take_v you_o a_o example_n o_o christian_n from_o that_o victory_n at_o karesta_n a_o few_o year_n since_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o year_n 1596._o what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o overcome_a you_o run_v away_o headlong_o by_o a_o sudden_a terror_n why_o when_o the_o turk_n sle_z and_o leave_v their_o camp_n and_o tent_n three_o whole_a day_n in_o the_o field_n without_o any_o keeper_n on_o the_o other_o side_n you_o shall_v run_v with_o violence_n into_o a_o most_o desperate_a flight_n some_o man_n in_o time_n past_o know_v not_o to_o use_v doubtful_a victory_n but_o after_o the_o
2.18_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o the_o antichrist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v come_v and_o even_o now_o be_v there_o many_o antichrist_n where_o the_o article_n you_o say_v be_v set_v before_o antichrist_n proper_o so_o call_v but_o none_o before_o he_o as_o he_o be_v common_o take_v and_o therefore_o that_o the_o first_o be_v one_o certain_a person_n but_o this_o late_a in_o general_n be_v all_o heretic_n i_o answer_v the_o great_a succour_n of_o this_o cause_n seem_v to_o consist_v in_o this_o new_a feign_a force_n of_o the_o article_n and_o therefore_o have_v we_o the_o colewort_n twice_o sodden_a set_v again_o before_o we_o but_o we_o have_v sufficient_o refute_v this_o your_o either_o ignorance_n or_o craftynes_n in_o the_o argument_n next_o before_o with_o which_o this_o be_v altogether_o one_o and_o the_o same_o yet_o lest_o you_o shall_v complayn_n that_o you_o have_v no_o answer_n be_v it_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o antichrist_n with_o a_o article_n be_v some_o diverse_a thing_n from_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d antichrist_n without_o a_o article_n must_v it_o therefore_o by_o and_o by_o be_v one_o certain_a person_n i_o deny_v such_o a_o ill_a coherent_a consequence_n it_o may_v note_v out_o a_o singular_a kind_n of_o antichrist_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o church_n so_o diligent_o even_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o wicked_a be_v often_o a_o kind_n of_o wicked_a man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o tempter_n and_o so_o in_o other_o in_o which_o the_o article_n respect_v not_o one_o singular_a but_o some_o thing_n common_a &_o egregious_a in_o his_o kind_n this_o may_v have_v be_v manifest_a to_o you_o by_o john_n himself_o while_o he_o warn_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o antichrist_n be_v in_o his_o time_n for_o many_o deceiver_n be_v enter_v in_o the_o world_n say_v he_o which_o confess_v not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o that_o be_v such_o a_o one_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o deceiver_n &_o the_o antichrist_n 2_o john_n 7._o where_o yet_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o that_o chief_a antichrist_n which_o be_v to_o come_v but_o of_o some_o such_o like_a sort_n by_o which_o it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o antichrist_n with_o a_o article_n be_v not_o a_o singular_a person_n the_o four_o place_n be_v daniel_n 7._o and_o 11._o and_o 12._o out_o of_o the_o 7._o chapter_n you_o take_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o little_a horn_n ver_fw-la 8._o etc._n etc._n which_o you_o say_v be_v to_o be_v expound_v of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o for_o two_o reason_n first_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o certain_a father_n then_o from_o the_o word_n of_o daniel_n himself_o i_o answer_v as_o touch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n i_o know_v many_o learned_a man_n do_v interpret_v these_o word_n of_o antichrist_n but_o this_o apocalypse_n dispel_v the_o darkness_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sight_n before_o suffer_v not_o to_o behold_v the_o thing_n itself_o for_o it_o teach_v that_o that_o little_a horn_n differ_v much_o from_o this_o antichrist_n who_o john_n describe_v for_o antichrist_n be_v one_o of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v of_o many_o form_n both_o in_o daniel_n and_o in_o john_n but_o a_o little_a horn_n be_v only_o some_o addition_n join_v to_o the_o head_n moreover_o this_o arise_v after_o the_o ten_o horn_n but_o antichrist_n rise_v together_o and_o at_o one_o hour_n with_o all_o he_o that_o subdue_v three_o horn_n under_o it_o the_o other_o unsubdued_a be_v either_o foe_n of_o the_o same_o or_o at_o least_o friend_n of_o equal_a power_n but_o antichrist_n be_v over_o all_o the_o 10._o horn_n which_o willing_o serve_v he_o until_o the_o appoint_a time_n final_o that_o be_v call_v little_a antichrist_n be_v not_o little_a who_o have_v power_n over_o every_o tribe_n tongue_n and_o nation_n apoc._n 13.7_o who_o also_o bear_v the_o whore_n to_o who_o people_v and_o multitude_n and_o nation_n and_o tongue_n do_v obey_v and_o which_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n apoc._n 17.15.18_o but_o you_o will_v say_v it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v call_v little_a in_o the_o beginning_n not_o in_o the_o full_a age_n i_o answer_v the_o chief_a height_n of_o dignity_n when_o he_o shall_v most_o flourish_v shall_v lift_v itself_o no_o high_o then_o over_o the_o 3._o horn_n which_o he_o shall_v depress_v doubtless_o the_o spirit_n will_v have_v make_v mention_n of_o more_o if_o he_o have_v have_v power_n over_o more_o that_o horn_n therefore_o be_v not_o this_o antichrist_n but_o if_o we_o will_v right_o consider_v the_o thing_n it_o be_v that_o dragon_n of_o the_o sixth_o vial_n of_o this_o apocalypse_n chap._n 16.13_o namely_o the_o turk_n for_o of_o he_o and_o the_o other_o enemy_n that_o shall_v oppress_v the_o jew_n do_v daniel_n only_o speak_v without_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o western_a antichrist_n as_o it_o may_v be_v occasion_n will_v be_v give_v elsewhere_o to_o declare_v more_o full_o this_o disparity_n therefore_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n suffer_v these_o two_o to_o convene_v in_o one_o whereupon_o you_o may_v now_o see_v that_o we_o be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o look_v either_o who_o or_o how_o many_o they_o be_v that_o say_v a_o thing_n as_o with_o what_o reason_n they_o so_o persuade_v themselves_o second_o you_o say_v from_o the_o word_n of_o daniel_n chap._n 7.24_o that_o this_o antichrist_n who_o ancient_a writer_n will_v have_v to_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o little_a horn_n be_v a_o singular_a person_n for_o he_o be_v not_o call_v one_o kingdom_n but_o one_o king_n who_o of_o ten_o king_n that_o he_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o world_n shall_v take_v three_o quite_o away_o and_o subdue_v the_o other_o seven_o under_o he_o i_o answer_v first_o these_o last_o word_n and_o shall_v subdue_v the_o other_o seven_o under_o he_o be_v a_o very_a bold_a comment_n see_v no_o footstep_n of_o they_o appear_v in_o daniel_n for_o he_o only_o say_v ver_fw-la 8._o so_o that_o three_o of_o those_o former_a horn_n be_v root_v out_o from_o before_o he_o and_o again_o ver_fw-la 24._o and_o three_o king_n shall_v he_o depress_v but_o of_o the_o subdue_a of_o the_o other_o 7._o he_o not_o where_o make_v mention_v and_o how_o i_o pray_v you_o shall_v he_o be_v a_o little_a horn_n if_o he_o shall_v destroy_v three_o and_o have_v command_v over_o all_o the_o rest_n these_o thing_n be_v unadvised_o bring_v in_o by_o some_o old_a writer_n but_o worse_o retain_v by_o you_o for_o to_o darken_v the_o truth_n but_o this_o be_v little_a to_o the_o purpose_n for_o the_o force_n of_o the_o argument_n therefore_o second_o i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v false_a to_o affirm_v because_o he_o be_v call_v one_o king_n he_o be_v one_o person_n for_o the_o angel_n before_o speak_v thus_o these_o great_a beast_n which_o be_v fowr_n be_v fowr_a king_n that_o shall_v rise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n ver_fw-la 17._o which_o yet_o be_v not_o fowr_v singular_a person_n but_o so_o many_o kingdom_n as_o yourself_o can_v not_o deny_v the_o other_o place_n of_o daniel_n be_v from_o chap._n 11_o ver_fw-la 21._o 36._o where_o literal_o be_v treat_v of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n but_o allegorical_o as_o calvin_n and_o cyprian_n and_o jerom_n you_o say_v do_v interpret_v it_o of_o antichrist_n who_o figure_n antiochus_n do_v bear_v therefore_o see_v he_o be_v one_o certain_a and_o singular_a person_n antichrist_n also_o must_v be_v one_o certain_a person_n i_o answer_v great_a in_o deed_n be_v the_o agreement_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o needs_o must_v many_o thing_n in_o they_o be_v find_v alike_o who_o be_v govern_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n for_o which_o cause_n those_o learned_a man_n avouch_v he_o to_o be_v the_o type_n of_o antichrist_n after_o a_o common_a sort_n but_o that_o the_o spirit_n intend_v he_o for_o the_o type_n proper_o as_o he_o be_v wont_v in_o the_o other_o scripture_n i_o see_v not_o how_o it_o can_v be_v right_o say_v it_o have_v not_o such_o agreement_n with_o that_o which_o they_o make_v the_o truth_n thereof_o as_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v find_v in_o other_o type_n for_o example_n this_o antiochus_n be_v the_o little_a horn_n of_o the_o goat_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v ch_n 8.14_o that_o he_o shall_v rage_v two_o thousand_o and_o three_o hundred_o day_n shall_v this_o be_v the_o type_n of_o antichrist_n then_o shall_v he_o not_o reign_v only_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a but_o six_o year_n and_o more_o than_o a_o half_a and_o so_o a_o other_o antichrist_n be_v to_o be_v look_v for_o than_o you_o yet_o feighn_n or_o if_o you_o will_v have_v it_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o exact_o answerable_a in_o the_o type_n and_o antitype_n
that_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o world_n and_o time_n of_o antichrist_n be_v at_o hand_n jerom_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o ageruchia_n concern_v monogamie_n say_v he_o that_o do_v hold_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o do_v we_o not_o understand_v that_o antichrist_n be_v near_a also_o gregory_n lib._n 4._o epist_n 38._o all_o thing_n foretell_v be_v come_v to_o pass_v the_o king_n of_o pride_n be_v near_o for_o if_o antichrist_n be_v near_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o or_o a_o thousand_o at_o the_o least_o as_o be_v evident_a by_o these_o testimony_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v you_o answer_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v deceive_v with_o opinion_n that_o the_o world_n end_n be_v near_a than_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v and_o that_o therefore_o antichrist_n be_v then_o near_o in_o false_a opinion_n not_o in_o very_a deed_n whereunto_o i_o say_v if_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v ground_v their_o sentence_n upon_o the_o persuasion_n only_o of_o the_o world_n end_n it_o must_v needs_o have_v be_v as_o they_o err_v in_o this_o so_o also_o they_o have_v err_v in_o antichrist_n but_o see_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o so_o by_o other_o argument_n and_o gather_v not_o so_o much_o that_o antichrist_n be_v near_o because_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o hand_n as_o that_o the_o world_n end_n be_v at_o hand_n because_o antichrist_n be_v near_o needs_o must_v that_o be_v firm_a and_o stable_a which_o they_o avouch_v of_o this_o thing_n unless_o beside_o that_o vain_a opinion_n you_o can_v prov_v the_o other_o reason_n also_o to_o be_v light_n but_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o their_o word_n that_o they_o have_v suspicion_n of_o the_o world_n end_n by_o antichrist_n come_v not_o contraryweise_v for_o jerome_n reason_v from_o the_o impediment_n take_v away_o that_o antichrist_n be_v near_o he_o that_o hold_v say_v he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o do_v we_o not_o understand_v that_o antichrist_n be_v near_a gregory_n by_o the_o fulfil_n all_o thing_n that_o be_v foretell_v than_o which_o what_o can_v be_v a_o more_o certain_a argument_n and_o you_o confess_v that_o all_o the_o ancient_n mind_v the_o evilnes_n of_o their_o time_n suspect_v that_o antichrist_n time_n be_v at_o hand_n they_o do_v not_o therefore_o upon_o suspicion_n of_o the_o end_n conclude_v of_o antichrist_n for_o the_o last_o end_n be_v never_o make_v a_o sign_n of_o thing_n go_v before_o but_o the_o thing_n that_o go_v before_o be_v determine_v to_o be_v sign_n of_o the_o last_o end_n the_o end_n see_v it_o be_v the_o last_o and_o the_o most_o unknown_a even_o to_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n and_o to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n himself_o mark_v 13.32_o can_v give_v no_o fore-perceiving_a of_o thing_n that_o be_v before_o &_o more_o know_v by_o sure_a argument_n therefore_o they_o know_v that_o antichrist_n be_v at_o hand_n but_o that_o which_o they_o join_v thereto_o of_o the_o last_o end_n rely_v but_o upon_o a_o unsure_a &_o humane_a conjecture_n they_o have_v receive_v from_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n strom._n lib._n 1._o a_o false_a chronologie_n of_o five_o thousand_o seven_o hundred_o four_o score_n &_o four_o year_n two_o month_n and_o twelve_o day_n pass_v from_o adam_n unto_o the_o death_n of_o commodus_n the_o emperor_n thereunto_o be_v add_v a_o opinion_n of_o the_o world_n durance_n six_o thousand_o year_n whereupon_o cyprian_n in_o the_o preface_n de_fw-mi exhort_v martyr_n say_v the_o six_o thousand_o year_n be_v now_o almost_o fulfil_v since_o the_o devil_n impugn_a man_n and_o lactantius_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 25._o divinar_n institut_fw-la all_o expectation_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o than_o of_o two_o hundred_o year_n add_v unto_o these_o the_o conjecture_n of_o the_o world_n speedy_a end_n after_o antichrist_n come_v and_o then_o it_o will_v easy_o appear_v that_o great_a difference_n there_o be_v between_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v handle_v of_o antichrist_n and_o of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o first_o they_o have_v find_v out_o by_o many_o prophecy_n and_o undoubted_a sign_n the_o late_a they_o do_v persuade_v themselves_o by_o some_o likelihood_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o infirm_a authority_n of_o man_n the_o like_a we_o do_v see_v in_o christ_n disciple_n which_o expect_v as_o we_o know_v a_o temporal_a kingdom_n yet_o when_o they_o preach_v that_o christ_n be_v come_v &_o that_o the_o kingdom_n be_v they_o to_o be_v restore_v to_o israel_n shall_v any_o which_o see_v not_o the_o kingdom_n restore_v disannul_v their_o faith_n touch_v christ_n come_n sure_o he_o shall_v do_v they_o wrong_n for_o that_o christ_n be_v come_v they_o know_v by_o most_o sure_a argument_n which_o can_v not_o deceive_v but_o their_o opinion_n of_o the_o temporal_a kingdom_n they_o draw_v from_o the_o dregs_n of_o the_o common_a error_n even_o so_o the_o ancient_a father_n understand_v by_o true_a sign_n from_o the_o scripture_n that_o antichrist_n be_v at_o the_o door_n but_o that_o which_o they_o affirm_v of_o the_o last_o end_n be_v of_o their_o own_o &_o shall_v not_o diminish_v the_o credit_n of_o that_o wherewith_o it_o be_v join_v therefore_o you_o have_v not_o escape_v by_o this_o your_o answer_n but_o by_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n it_o remain_v firm_a and_o steadfast_a that_o antichrist_n be_v come_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o for_o nought_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o florence_n one_o of_o your_o own_o man_n open_o avouch_v five_o hundred_o year_n ago_o that_o antichrist_n be_v then_o come_v to_o stop_v who_o mouth_n the_o council_n of_o florence_n be_v gather_v but_o you_o think_v it_o better_o that_o the_o fame_n of_o this_o council_n shall_v rather_o come_v unto_o posterity_n than_o that_o the_o act_n thereof_o shall_v come_v unto_o their_o knowledge_n as_o touch_v the_o late_a man_n in_o the_o first_o place_n you_o mention_v the_o samosatenian_o of_o hungary_n which_o who_o i_o will_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o think_v or_o think_v not_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o until_o they_o return_v unto_o soundness_n of_o mind_n the_o other_o learned_a man_n have_v a_o threefold_a difference_n illyricus_n chytraeus_n and_o luther_n make_v antichrist_n come_v to_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o l._n 500_o bullinger_n at_o the_o year_n 763._o musculus_fw-la about_o the_o year_n 1200._o sure_o the_o second_o rise_v of_o the_o beast_n in_o who_o territory_n they_o remain_v do_v cast_v so_o strong_a a_o smell_n to_o those_o prudent_a man_n that_o they_o can_v retch_v their_o mind_n to_o no_o further_a thing_n even_o as_o hound_n which_o when_o they_o fall_v upon_o the_o den_n of_o the_o wild_a beast_n do_v run_v with_o full_a course_n and_o cry_v not_o scent_v any_o more_o the_o several_a footstep_n therefore_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o transfer_v unto_o this_o second_o rise_v the_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o first_o and_o bring_v in_o here_o some_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n nevertheless_o this_o light_a aberration_n of_o the_o time_n of_o his_o rise_n take_v not_o away_o his_o rise_n but_o by_o their_o voice_n and_o cry_n we_o know_v that_o antichrist_n be_v though_o the_o moment_n when_o first_o he_o begin_v to_o be_v be_v hide_v from_o they_o let_v we_o therefore_o run_v through_o your_o answer_n unto_o every_o of_o they_o that_o you_o may_v perceive_v how_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o err_v as_o yourself_o have_v labour_v in_o vain_a in_o oppugn_v their_o judgement_n second_o therefore_o you_o encounter_v with_o illyricus_n who_o say_v antichrist_n be_v they_o bear_v when_o phocas_n grant_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o year_n 606._o you_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v not_o bear_v at_o this_o time_n for_o two_o cause_n first_o because_o antichrist_n temporal_a reign_n of_o 666._o year_n which_o illyricus_n will_v have_v to_o begin_v at_o that_o arise_v shall_v now_o long_o since_o be_v end_v and_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v dead_a second_o that_o by_o his_o spiritual_a reign_n which_o illyricus_n will_v have_v to_o be_v of_o 5260_o year_n the_o centurie_n writer_n may_v exact_o know_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n contrary_a to_o our_o lord_n word_n acts._n 1_o &_o mat._n 24._o i_o answer_v unto_o the_o first_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a thing_n which_o you_o gather_v of_o antichrist_n death_n at_o the_o end_n of_o 666._o year_n when_o you_o see_v they_o give_v unto_o he_o a_o spiritual_a reign_n of_o 1260._o year_n can_v any_o one_o reign_n 594._o year_n for_o so_o many_o be_v this_o reign_n prorogue_v beyond_o the_o temporal_a after_o he_o be_v dead_a but_o perhaps_o your_o spiritual_a pope_n have_v no_o more_o vital_a life_n without_o
rebellious_a prince_n agha_v the_o dragon_n but_o his_o chief_n defender_n legate_n and_o administrator_n by_o who_o help_n he_o most_o exercise_v his_o tyranny_n apoc._n 12.3_o beside_o the_o ten_o horn_n be_v not_o the_o dissolution_n of_o that_o empire_n who_o body_n remain_v after_o they_o be_v rise_v up_o but_o so_o the_o vision_n teach_v evident_o that_o the_o beast_n namely_o the_o four_o shall_v not_o be_v slay_v and_o his_o body_n destroy_v before_o the_o horn_n which_o spring_v up_o after_o those_o ten_o be_v break_v and_o take_v away_o dan._n 7.11_o wherefore_o the_o ten_o horn_n do_v no_o way_n signify_v the_o dissipation_n and_o fall_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n whereby_o to_o afford_v we_o any_o help_n for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o antichrist_n come_v unto_o these_o may_v be_v add_v that_o which_o this_o argument_n have_v common_a with_o the_o former_a that_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o mention_n of_o antichrist_n here_o in_o deed_n the_o little_a horn_n grow_v up_o after_o the_o rest_n and_o some_o learned_a man_n do_v apply_v it_o hither_o but_o neither_o do_v yourself_o now_o insist_v upon_o this_o horn_n and_o we_o have_v show_v before_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n hereof_o that_o this_o exposition_n be_v untrue_a the_o three_o place_n be_v out_o of_o apoc._n 17.16_o where_o the_o ten_o horn_n you_o will_v have_v to_o be_v ten_o king_n which_o shall_v reign_v together_o but_o shall_v not_o be_v roman_n because_o these_o king_n shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n and_o make_v her_o desolate_a and_o so_o shall_v divide_v the_o roman_a empire_n among_o themselves_o and_o utter_o destroy_v it_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v even_o marvellous_a that_o you_o see_v not_o the_o plain_n contrary_a to_o that_o you_o intend_v here_o prove_v for_o if_o this_o hatred_n wherewith_o the_o ten_o king_n shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n &_o make_v her_o desolate_a be_v the_o fall_n and_o ruin_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n then_o shall_v antichrist_n come_v before_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v desolate_a for_o there_o shall_v be_v hatred_n long_o before_o this_o and_o the_o ten_o king_n shall_v serve_v she_o a_o great_a while_n before_o they_o shall_v thus_o rise_v up_o in_o wrath_n against_o the_o whore_n according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v for_o 12.13_o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o sewe_v be_v ten_o king_n which_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v a_o kingdom_n but_o shall_v receive_v power_n as_o king_n at_o one_o hour_n with_o the_o beast_n these_o have_v one_o mind_n and_o shall_v give_v their_o strength_n and_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n moreover_o these_o be_v the_o horn_n of_o the_o beast_n not_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n divide_v ver_fw-la 3._o which_o if_o they_o signify_v any_o division_n the_o beast_n shall_v be_v divide_v from_o his_o first_o arise_v and_o further_o see_v they_o shall_v rise_v at_o the_o same_o hour_n with_o the_o beast_n they_o shall_v not_o go_v before_o he_o whereby_o to_o declare_v by_o some_o praecursion_n that_o he_o follow_v behind_o they_o wherefore_o nothing_o at_o all_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o hence_o concern_v the_o desolation_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n as_o of_o any_o sign_n of_o antichrist_n come_v the_o four_o place_n be_v out_o of_o 2._o thes_n 6.7_o and_o now_o you_o know_v what_o withhold_v that_o he_o may_v be_v revel_v in_o his_o time_n only_o that_o he_o which_o now_o hold_v may_v hold_v till_o he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o then_o shall_v the_o wicked_a man_n be_v revel_v etc._n etc._n where_o the_o roman_a empire_n you_o say_v hinder_v antichrist_n come_v who_o shall_v take_v his_o empire_n out_o of_o the_o way_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o so_o do_v the_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n expound_v this_o place_n i_o answer_v i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o i_o have_v often_o say_v do_v not_o level_v aright_o in_o these_o matter_n for_o that_o be_v far_o distant_a from_o the_o event_n of_o thing_n they_o be_v lead_v only_o by_o conjecture_n they_o know_v so_o much_o as_o concern_v their_o own_o time_n yet_o remember_v i_o pray_v you_o what_o manner_n desolation_n jerom_n understand_v who_o will_v have_v he_o that_o do_v hold_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n in_o his_o time_n he_o that_o do_v hold_v say_v he_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o way_n etc._n etc._n as_o before_o i_o cite_v he_o so_o that_o by_o his_o judgement_n the_o roman_a empire_n be_v then_o so_o desolate_a that_o there_o be_v no_o let_n on_o this_o behalf_n to_o hinder_v antichrist_n come_v and_o sure_o gregory_n say_v not_o right_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v that_o be_v foretell_v the_o king_n of_o pride_n be_v nigh_o if_o such_o a_o desolation_n have_v be_v to_o be_v look_v for_o as_o you_o speak_v of_o or_o such_o ten_o king_n shall_v go_v before_o as_o you_o papist_n do_v mention_n therefore_o those_o father_n be_v either_o altogether_o ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v this_o let_n or_o they_o so_o waver_v to_o &_o fro_o in_o a_o doubtful_a opinion_n as_o no_o firm_a and_o stable_a thing_n can_v be_v gather_v from_o their_o say_n but_o the_o apocalypse_v be_v now_o very_o much_o illustrate_v by_o the_o event_n put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o controversy_n and_o explain_v paul_n most_o certain_o and_o faithful_o teach_v that_o the_o withholder_n be_v not_o the_o roman_a empire_n but_o the_o sixth_o roman_a king_n five_o say_v he_o be_v fall_v one_o namely_o the_o sixth_o be_v the_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v chap._n 17.10_o that_o be_v the_o hethen_a emperor_n which_o make_v the_o sixth_o king_n do_v now_o reign_v which_o be_v at_o length_n remove_v and_o deliver_v rome_n empty_a to_o the_o pope_n the_o seven_o king_n shall_v come_v even_o antichrist_n the_o roman_a empire_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n one_o but_o the_o manner_n of_o administer_a it_o by_o divers_a magistrate_n and_o the_o kind_n of_o govern_v be_v manifold_a neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v five_o roman_a empire_n be_v fall_v but_o five_o king_n which_o be_v the_o ruler_n and_o moderator_n of_o that_o one_o empire_n more_o over_o antichrist_n be_v the_o seven_o roman_a king_n for_o so_o the_o angel_n plain_o say_v and_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o verse_n 11._o shall_v the_o roman_a empire_n be_v desolate_a while_o the_o king_n thereof_o be_v alive_a nay_o very_o but_o rather_o by_o bear_v of_o he_o the_o whore_n rome_n shall_v great_o flourish_v therefore_o when_o antichrist_n come_v the_o roman_a empire_n be_v not_o to_o be_v destroy_v but_o during_o that_o time_n foreappointed_n of_o god_n be_v marvellous_o to_o be_v conserve_v increase_v amplify_v we_o may_v understand_v therefore_o paul_n and_o the_o angel_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o same_o impediment_n but_o the_o angel_n more_o plain_o and_o clear_o describe_v it_o by_o place_n dignity_n and_o number_n by_o which_o most_o plain_n and_o true_a sign_n we_o may_v be_v lead_v as_o by_o the_o hand_n unto_o antichrist_n cradle_n wherefore_o antichrist_n shall_v come_v while_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v safe_a and_o flourish_a and_o there_o be_v need_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v give_v place_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o leave_v his_o habitation_n free_a you_o therefore_o bellarmine_n rely_v upon_o a_o manifest_a error_n whereby_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v if_o in_o time_n you_o take_v not_o heed_n that_o not_o expect_v antichrist_n before_o the_o last_o overthrow_n of_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n you_o will_v be_v by_o he_o oppress_v &_o destroy_v before_o you_o perceive_v that_o he_o be_v come_v your_o second_o proposition_n be_v that_o the_o roman_a empire_n do_v yet_o endure_v which_o i_o grant_v without_o contradiction_n and_o now_o as_o you_o see_v without_o any_o detriment_n to_o the_o cause_n which_o i_o have_v in_o hand_n although_o in_o the_o head_n of_o this_o empire_n which_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o in_o few_o word_n you_o be_v sure_o much_o deceive_v you_o think_v the_o emperor_n have_v this_o dignity_n and_o in_o deed_n i_o confess_v he_o have_v it_o in_o name_n and_o title_n but_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o thing_n itself_o for_o the_o roman_a king_n must_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o whore_n rome_n which_o the_o emperor_n be_v not_o but_o the_o pope_n who_o make_v the_o seven_o &_o eight_o head_n as_o be_v declare_v apoc._n 17.11_o moreover_o the_o emperor_n since_o first_o the_o beast_n begin_v have_v whole_o serve_v he_o as_o the_o apocalypse_v also_o show_v say_v and_o they_o shall_v give_v their_o power_n &_o their_o authority_n to_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o time_n confirm_v it_o which_o servitude_n proceed_v so_o far_o that_o they_o receive_v a_o mark_n and_o yield_v a_o oath_n of_o fealty_n that_o i_o
but_o not_o day_n for_o year_n or_o month_n of_o year_n and_o that_o it_o be_v right_o call_v a_o week_n because_o it_o have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o number_n seven_o but_o month_n and_o day_n be_v name_n of_o number_n but_o of_o the_o course_n of_o the_o man_n or_o time_n of_o light_n i_o answer_v whereas_o first_o you_o say_v that_o day_n be_v not_o find_v for_o year_n it_o be_v manifest_o false_a say_v not_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o israelit_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o day_n wherein_o you_o search_v the_o land_n even_o forty_o day_n you_o shall_v bear_v your_o iniquity_n forty_o year_n num._n 14_o 34._o what_o can_v be_v plain_o likeweise_v unto_o ezechiel_n a_o day_n for_o a_o year_n have_v i_o give_v thou_o chap._n 9.6_o but_o say_v you_o he_o will_v not_o say_v for_o day_n literal_o be_v mean_v year_n but_o the_o day_n be_v true_o take_v for_o year_n and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v for_o year_n because_o they_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o year_n o_o wit_n worthy_a of_o sneeze_v wort_n a_o day_n be_v not_o a_o very_a year_n but_o only_o a_o sign_n or_o signification_n of_o a_o year_n as_o if_o any_o ever_o think_v a_o day_n to_o be_v a_o year_n true_o and_o proper_o or_o if_o a_o day_n may_v signify_v a_o year_n in_o ezechiel_n &_o other_o place_n but_o may_v not_o in_o john_n but_o now_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o reason_n why_o a_o week_n may_v be_v of_o year_n and_o not_o a_o day_n likeweise_v forsooth_o because_o a_o week_n signify_v number_n a_o day_n not_o to_o this_o i_o say_v unity_n indeed_o be_v not_o number_n and_o a_o day_n answer_v to_o unity_n and_o this_o very_o subtle_o how_o be_v it_o we_o dullar_n do_v think_v that_o number_n be_v the_o gather_v together_o of_o unity_n &_o that_o unity_n be_v such_o as_o be_v the_o whole_a itself_o which_o be_v make_v of_o they_o therefore_o as_o 7_o day_n signify_v 7_o year_n so_o i_o pray_v you_o with_o your_o good_a leave_v let_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o one_o day_n to_o signify_v one_o year_n which_o if_o you_o will_v let_v we_o obteyn_fw-mi at_o your_o hand_n in_o thanks_o for_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n we_o will_v grant_v your_o pope_n a_o long_a last_a reign_n even_o 1260._o year_n chapt._n 9_o against_o the_o sixth_o demonstration_n from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o sixth_o demonstration_n be_v take_v from_o the_o last_o sign_n that_o follow_v antichrist_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n if_o antichrist_n say_v you_o have_v be_v come_v long_o since_o the_o world_n have_v be_v at_o a_o end_n long_o since_o for_o he_o be_v to_o come_v a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o world_n be_v not_o yet_o end_v therefore_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v i_o answer_v if_o that_o of_o antichrist_n three_o year_n reign_n have_v be_v certain_a this_o which_o you_o say_v shall_v have_v some_o weight_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o to_o be_v a_o vain_a fiction_n partly_o by_o take_v away_o your_o reason_n partly_o by_o propound_v such_o as_o you_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o refute_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n may_v well_o teach_v antichrist_n end_v but_o be_v of_o no_o force_n at_o all_o to_o demonstrate_v his_o come_n if_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o it_o proper_o from_o the_o place_n by_o you_o cite_v some_o perhaps_o may_v argue_v thus_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v conjoin_v with_o the_o end_n of_o antichrist_n but_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v therefore_o neither_o the_o end_n of_o antichrist_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n we_o make_v question_n of_o his_o come_n not_o of_o his_o end_n you_o may_v have_v spare_v this_o labour_n unless_o perhaps_o you_o think_v these_o be_v to_o be_v prepare_v against_o a_o new_a battle_n when_o antichrist_n case_n shall_v be_v debate_v in_o hell_n there_o this_o domonstration_n may_v have_v some_o weight_n where_o it_o shall_v be_v certain_o know_v whither_o the_o pope_n be_v perish_v together_o with_o the_o destruction_n of_o all_o the_o world_n or_o no._n wherefore_o the_o testimony_n which_o you_o bring_v be_v quite_o from_o the_o purpose_n and_o make_v nothing_o for_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n yea_o what_o and_o if_o they_o prove_v not_o that_o end_n which_o you_o think_v then_o will_v this_o your_o demonstration_n be_v altogether_o both_o without_o head_n and_o tail_n let_v we_o see_v in_o few_o word_n that_o we_o may_v also_o illustrate_v as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o way_n some_o obscure_a place_n who_o meaning_n it_o will_v be_v very_o profitable_a for_o to_o know_v first_o you_o allege_v that_o of_o dan._n ch_z 7.9_o i_o consider_v the_o horn_n &_o lo_o a_o other_o little_a horn_n come_v up_o &_o three_o of_o the_o first_o horn_n be_v pluck_v away_o from_o before_o he_o i_o behold_v till_o the_o throne_n be_v set_v up_o and_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n do_v sit_v etc._n etc._n and_o afterward_o explain_v the_o vision_n he_o say_v the_o fou_fw-mi the_o beast_n shall_v be_v the_o four_o kingdom_n and_o the_o ten_o horn_n be_v ten_o king_n &_o a_o other_o shall_v rise_v up_o after_o they_o &_o he_o shall_v be_v mighty_a than_o the_o former_a &_o shall_v subdue_v three_o king_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v into_o his_o hand_n for_o a_o time_n &_o time_n &_o half_o a_o time_n &_o judgement_n shall_v sit_v i_o answer_v neither_o be_v the_o little_a horn_n the_o antichrist_n as_o we_o have_v show_v neither_o if_o he_o be_v do_v his_o end_n lead_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o come_n but_o leave_v these_o let_v we_o weigh_v for_o what_o cause_n this_o be_v cite_v from_o these_o word_n you_o will_v teach_v that_o the_o end_n shall_v straightway_o follow_v that_o little_a horn_n but_o you_o ought_v to_o have_v consider_v withal_o the_o word_n after_o in_o ver_fw-la 14._o &_o to_o he_o be_v give_v dominion_n &_o glory_n &_o kingdom_n that_o all_o people_n nation_n &_o tongue_n shall_v serve_v he_o that_o be_v he_o which_o shall_v obteyn_a the_o kingdom_n when_o the_o little_a horn_n be_v destroy_v shall_v be_v a_o universal_a king_n unto_o who_o all_o nation_n shall_v obey_v but_o shall_v there_o remain_v a_o distinction_n of_o people_n nation_n and_o tongue_n after_o the_o last_o end_n yet_o be_v it_o more_o plain_a after_o if_o plain_a may_v be_v in_o verse_n 27._o and_o the_o kingdom_n and_o amplitude_n and_o rule_v of_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o holy_a most_o high_a who_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v a_o perpetual_a kingdom_n and_o all_o ruler_n shall_v serve_v it_o where_o first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o dominion_n of_o this_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o thing_n under_o heaven_n then_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o holy_a most-high_a and_o final_o that_o all_o ruler_n shall_v serve_v this_o kingdom_n which_o thing_n can_v have_v place_n in_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n the_o thing_n ●s_v thus_o that_o little_a horn_n be_v the_o turk_n who_o be_v at_o last_o extinguish_v the_o jew_n convert_v universallie_o all_o of_o they_o unto_o the_o faith_n shall_v have_v a_o perpetual_a domination_n that_o shall_v dure_v until_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n from_o heaven_n for_o the_o little_a horn_n in_o daniel_n be_v gog_n in_o ezechiel_n who_o be_v slay_v the_o christian_a faith_n shall_v exceed_o flourish_v among_o the_o jew_n as_o be_v show_v by_o that_o typical_a build_n of_o the_o temple_n &_o new_a city_n the_o same_o reason_n be_v of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n in_o this_o apocalypse_n after_o gog_n be_v slay_v ch_n 20.21_o these_o thing_n we_o have_v partly_o take_v out_o of_o the_o 16._o chap._n of_o the_o apocalypse_n partly_o they_o shall_v be_v explayn_v hereafter_o more_o full_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o lactantius_n write_v lib._n 7._o chap._n 15._o the_o name_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o wherewith_o the_o world_n now_o be_v rule_v my_o hart_n be_v afraid_a to_o speak_v it_o but_o speak_v it_o i_o will_v because_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o empire_n shall_v return_v into_o asia_n &_o the_o east_n again_o shall_v have_v dominion_n and_o the_o west_n shall_v serve_v the_o second_o place_n be_v ap._n 20.4_o after_o this_o he_o must_v be_v loose_v a_o little_a time_n and_o i_o see_v seat_n and_o they_o sit_v upon_o they_o and_o judgement_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o i_o answer_v these_o thing_n be_v far_o from_o the_o last_o end_n for_o they_o follow_v not_o as_o you_o think_v after_o the_o devil_n be_v loose_v but_o these_o seat_n be_v place_v during_o his_o imprisonment_n again_o there_o be_v 1000_o
jew_n will_v never_o receive_v a_o man_n that_o be_v not_o a_o jew_n and_o uncircumcised_a it_o make_v against_o you_o for_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o will_v never_o receive_v antichrist_n proper_o so_o call_v who_o by_o necessary_a reason_n we_o have_v evince_v to_o be_v a_o gentile_a and_o uncircumcised_a second_o you_o say_v antichrist_n feynenth_n himself_o to_o be_v of_o david_n family_n because_o such_o a_o one_o the_o jew_n do_v expect_v i_o answer_v either_o antichrist_n shall_v feign_v it_o or_o you_o now_o feyn_fw-mi it_o of_o he_o where_o i_o pray_v you_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n among_o all_o other_o note_n of_o the_o true_a antichrist_n describe_v he_o unto_o we_o by_o this_o but_o it_o be_v god_n just_a judgement_n that_o you_o which_o turn_v the_o truth_n into_o shadow_n shall_v be_v delude_v by_o shadow_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o so_o as_o your_o custom_n be_v be_v destitute_a of_o all_o scripture_n and_o probable_a reason_n you_o flee_v to_o the_o patronage_n of_o humane_a authority_n whereunto_o beside_o the_o other_o thing_n already_o fore_o mention_v i_o oppose_v this_o reason_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o conclusion_n the_o jew_n shall_v have_v no_o dominion_n before_o they_o return_v unto_o christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o be_v of_o they_o who_o shall_v be_v the_o high_a ruler_n and_o as_o you_o feighn_n by_o help_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v subdue_v the_o gentile_n the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o reason_n be_v plain_o confirm_v by_o many_o scripture_n some_o of_o which_o i_o will_v set_v down_o not_o so_o much_o for_o your_o sake_n bellarmine_n though_o for_o you_o also_o if_o so_o be_v at_o last_o you_o shall_v affect_v the_o truth_n as_o for_o my_o brethren_n who_o i_o will_v have_v to_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o this_o judgement_n unto_o a_o more_o diligent_a search_n of_o many_o place_n which_o be_v common_o count_v plain_a and_o evident_a be_v yet_o altogether_o unknown_a the_o first_o be_v lev._n 26.39.40_o etc._n etc._n where_o the_o last_o plague_n of_o the_o chapter_n be_v this_o grievous_a cast_n of_o of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n in_o which_o they_o lie_v for_o despise_v christ_n from_o the_o time_n he_o be_v crucify_v unto_o this_o very_a day_n who_o solution_n and_o deliverance_n at_o last_o be_v conjow_v with_o the_o extreme_a misery_n wherein_o they_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o time_n when_o this_o deliverance_n shall_v happen_v unto_o they_o but_o if_o that_o antichristian_a glory_n which_o you_o do_v feyn_fw-mi do_v come_v between_o how_o shall_v this_o bounteousnes_n of_o god_n find_v they_o so_o miserable_o afflict_v the_o second_o be_v out_o of_o that_o excellent_a song_n of_o moses_n deut._n 32.36_o etc._n etc._n when_o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v judge_v his_o people_n then_o will_v he_o repent_v towards_o his_o servant_n when_o he_o shall_v see_v that_o their_o power_n be_v go_v and_o that_o the_o shut_v up_o with_o the_o leave_v abroad_o be_v nothing_o and_o he_o will_v say_v where_o be_v their_o god_n the_o rock_n in_o who_o they_o trust_v there_o moses_n sing_v of_o the_o same_o time_n &_o touch_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v unto_o the_o low_a ebb_n when_o god_n shall_v arise_v to_o avenge_v his_o people_n the_o three_o be_v that_o of_o esay_n 49.14_o and_o if_o zion_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v forsake_v i_o etc._n etc._n unto_o these_o shall_v be_v adjoin_v jer._n 30.8_o etc._n etc._n ezek._n 37._o dan._n 12.1_o hos_fw-la 3.4.5_o which_o few_o place_n may_v suffice_v to_o open_v the_o meaning_n of_o many_o from_o which_o i_o conclude_v although_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v neither_o at_o any_o time_n a_o jew_n nor_o by_o the_o jew_n receive_v for_o the_o messiah_n but_o rather_o be_v by_o they_o hate_v yet_o this_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o great_a antichrist_n yea_o and_o unless_o these_o thing_n be_v he_o shall_v be_v far_o from_o be_v the_o principal_a antichrist_n as_o in_o their_o place_n we_o have_v declare_v chapt._n 13._o of_o antichrist_n seat_n in_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n we_o conclude_v by_o most_o firm_a argument_n take_v therfrom_o that_o rome_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o forthwith_o after_o the_o empire_n be_v take_v from_o the_o hethen_a emperor_n for_o the_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n abide_v fix_v to_o rome_n where_o be_v both_o those_o hill_n and_o king_n that_o the_o angel_n speak_v of_o and_o where_o these_o head_n abide_v fix_v there_o must_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n need_v be_v moreover_o see_v antichrist_n then_o also_o show_v himself_o when_o constantine_n begin_v to_o reign_v as_o before_o be_v prove_v at_o large_a he_o have_v no_o other_o seat_n than_o rome_n for_o whereas_o he_o abide_v a_o few_o year_n at_o avenion_n he_o do_v that_o with_o purpose_n to_o sojourn_v for_o a_o time_n not_o with_o a_o mind_n to_o change_v his_o seat_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a you_o bellarmine_n do_v contend_v that_o antichrist_n seat_n shall_v be_v jerusalem_fw-la not_o rome_n and_o solomon_n temple_n and_o david_n throne_n not_o s._n peter_n temple_n or_o the_o seat_n apostolical_a which_o you_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v two_o way_n first_o by_o a_o argument_n unto_o the_o man_n then_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n the_o argument_n be_v this_o if_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v antichrist_n sit_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n then_o the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n and_o as_o many_o as_o be_v alien_n from_o the_o church_n which_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n do_v live_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n church_n can_v be_v but_o one_o as_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o our_o man_n do_v affirm_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v antichrist_n therefore_o our_o man_n all_o do_v live_v out_o of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v the_o proposition_n be_v false_a and_o rely_v only_o upon_o the_o church_n unity_n misunderstand_v for_o the_o church_n be_v both_o common_o so_o call_v and_o proper_o the_o first_o have_v piety_n corrupt_v the_o word_n adulterate_v the_o sacrament_n deprave_v be_v full_a of_o superstition_n and_o humane_a devise_n retain_v christ_n name_n only_o and_o boast_v in_o the_o title_n thereof_o and_o also_o common_o so_o account_v while_o any_o whit_n of_o the_o foundation_n be_v remain_v the_o other_o be_v chaste_a pure_a entire_a clean_o harken_v to_o christ_n voice_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o not_o depart_v from_o his_o praescribed_a rule_n any_o whit_n at_o all_o so_o far_o as_o mortal_a infirmity_n suffer_v and_o this_o always_o be_v the_o only_a and_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n how_o ever_o the_o whore_n also_o take_v this_o name_n to_o herself_o so_o before_o the_o temple_n &_o altar_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o elect_a and_o mesure_v by_o the_o angel_n but_o the_o court_n be_v not_o set_v forth_o with_o any_o description_n but_o cast_v out_o and_o permit_v to_o the_o gentile_n to_o weet_v the_o profane_a multitude_n which_o for_o their_o neerne_n false_o challenge_v the_o name_n of_o the_o temple_n to_o who_o the_o holy_a city_n also_o be_v give_v which_o have_v their_o seat_n in_o the_o say_a court_n they_o tread_v under_o foot_n at_o their_o pleasure_n during_o the_o appoint_a time_n apoc._n 11.1.2_o more_o plain_o in_o the_o 7._o church_n which_o all_o be_v christ_n though_o sardis_n live_v but_o in_o name_n only_o and_o the_o angel_n of_o laodicea_n be_v neither_o hot_a nor_o cold_a forthwith_o to_o be_v spew_v out_o unless_o he_o repent_v chap._n 3.1.16_o therefore_o that_o be_v not_o right_o transfer_v unto_o the_o common_a church_n which_o pertain_v unto_o it_o proper_o so_o call_v one_o may_v be_v a_o alien_n from_o the_o church_n common_o so_o call_v and_o yet_o be_v a_o true_a citizen_n of_o the_o true_a church_n if_o you_o can_v show_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v his_o chair_n in_o this_o which_o proper_o enjoy_v this_o name_n you_o may_v right_o conclude_v we_o all_o to_o be_v fugitive_n and_o very_o miserable_a but_o while_o you_o shuffle_v together_o thing_n disjoin_v and_o contrary_a and_o dally_v as_o your_o manner_n be_v with_o a_o plain_n aequivocation_n the_o absurdity_n which_o you_o think_v to_o throw_v against_o we_o be_v light_v upon_o your_o own_o head_n so_o your_o argument_n unto_o the_o man_n be_v lie_v like_v he_o who_o cause_n you_o have_v in_o hand_n second_o you_o prove_v it_o from_o three_o scripture_n the_o first_o whereof_o be_v apoc._n 11.8_o where_o you_o say_v john_n say_v that_o henoch_n and_o elias_n shall_v fight_v with_o antichrist_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o there_o be_v kill_v i_o answer_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o henoch_n and_o elias_n to_o come_v and_o fight_v with_o antichrist_n be_v altogether_o vain_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 6._o
chapter_n against_o your_o three_o demonstration_n but_o because_o it_o skill_v nothing_o for_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n what_o the_o name_n of_o these_o prophet_n be_v we_o let_v that_o pass_v for_o the_o present_a and_o do_v say_v that_o that_o which_o you_o tell_v we_o how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v kill_v in_o jerusalem_n be_v false_a for_o the_o spirit_n design_v not_o jerusalem_n by_o name_n but_o only_o by_o this_o circumlocution_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v which_o agree_v as_o well_o unto_o rome_n see_v christ_n be_v crucify_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o pilate_n the_o roman_a deputy_n by_o which_o fact_n he_o make_v his_o city_n guilty_a of_o this_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v by_o this_o city_n authority_n as_o we_o have_v show_v on_o chap._n 11.8_o this_o argument_n therefore_o be_v worthless_a and_o weak_a assume_v that_o which_o can_v be_v prove_v yea_o the_o contrary_a whereof_o be_v plain_o evident_a by_o the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o either_o chytraeus_n shall_v purposely_o pass_v by_o these_o word_n as_o you_o feyn_v where_o the_o lord_n also_o be_v crucify_v or_o why_o you_o shall_v so_o trouble_v yourself_o to_o prove_v against_o jerom_n that_o jerusalem_n may_v be_v call_v sodom_n which_o we_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v so_o call_v otherwhere_o although_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n your_o rome_n only_o be_v sodom_n &_o you_o shall_v rather_o have_v strain_v your_o sinew_n to_o acquitt_v yourselves_o of_o this_o than_o have_v spend_v your_o strength_n in_o a_o matter_n for_o which_o there_o be_v no_o fight_n the_o second_o place_n be_v apoc._n 17._o where_o john_n say_v that_o the_o ten_o king_n which_o shall_v divide_v the_o roman_a empire_n to_o themselves_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o who_o reign_n antichrist_n shall_v come_v shall_v hate_v the_o purple_a whore_n that_o be_v rome_n and_o make_v her_o desolate_a and_o burn_v her_o cke_z with_o fire_n how_o then_o say_v you_o shall_v it_o be_v antichrist_n seat_n if_o at_o the_o self_n same_o time_n it_o must_v be_v overthrow_v and_o burn_v i_o answer_v the_o apocalypse_n easy_o take_v from_o you_o this_o scruple_n you_o ask_v how_o antichrist_n seat_n can_v be_v burn_v he_o be_v alive_a and_o see_v it_o the_o apocalypse_n tell_v that_o the_o five_o vial_n shall_v be_v pour_v out_o on_o the_o beast_n throne_n and_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v make_v dark_a so_o that_o they_o shall_v gnaw_v their_o tongue_n for_o so_o row_n chap._n 16.10.11_o which_o vial_n very_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o this_o burn_a whereby_o the_o ten_o king_n shall_v consume_v the_o whore_n to_o ash_n for_o you_o see_v that_o this_o city_n which_o be_v to_o be_v consume_v with_o fire_n be_v queen_n of_o the_o nation_n which_o agree_v not_o to_o jerusalem_n that_o have_v be_v lay_v even_o with_o the_o ground_n now_o many_o age_n since_o and_o if_o you_o doubt_v how_o the_o ten_o king_n shall_v be_v inflame_v with_o such_o hatred_n who_o so_o dear_o love_v the_o whore_n before_o hear_v how_o the_o angel_n say_v that_o for_o a_o time_n they_o will_v yield_v themselves_o whole_o to_o the_o beast_n but_o shall_v at_o length_n be_v stir_v up_o of_o god_n to_o destroy_v she_o who_o they_o most_o honour_v before_o ver_fw-la 16.17_o this_o hatred_n therefore_o will_v afford_v your_o room_n no_o comfort_n the_o other_o thing_n which_o you_o heap_v up_o to_o exaggerate_v this_o argument_n be_v of_o no_o weight_n at_o all_o for_o that_o antichrist_n the_o jew_n we_o have_v chase_v away_o in_o the_o former_a disputation_n and_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v mention_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o asia_n be_v some_o small_a piece_n of_o truth_n shine_v clear_o in_o the_o fabulous_a heap_n of_o confuse_v earth_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o empire_n shall_v return_v thither_o again_o but_o which_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o constitute_v but_o christ_n himself_o shall_v build_v take_v pity_n on_o his_o people_n and_o declare_v himself_o in_o his_o church_n to_o be_v king_n of_o all_o nation_n the_o three_o place_n be_v in_o those_o word_n so_o that_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n 2._o thess_n 2.4_o where_o you_o bring_v four_o exposition_n of_o the_o temple_n the_o first_o be_v they_o that_o by_o the_o temple_n understand_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o second_o be_v augustine_n who_o interprete_v the_o temple_n to_o be_v antichrist_n himself_o with_o his_o whole_a people_n which_o will_v have_v himself_o and_o he_o to_o be_v think_v the_o true_a spiritual_a temple_n of_o god_n the_o three_o be_v chrysostoms_n that_o take_v the_o temple_n for_o christian_a church_n the_o four_o be_v they_o that_o understand_v it_o of_o salomon_n temple_n of_o these_o four_o exposition_n you_o choose_v this_o last_o worst_a and_o further_a from_o the_o truth_n even_o as_o woman_n when_o they_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o green_a sickness_n do_v long_o for_o coal_n &_o leather_n more_o than_o for_o wholesome_a meat_n the_o temple_n in_o this_o place_n must_v needs_o be_v that_o people_n who_o the_o apostasy_n be_v for_o which_o antichrist_n be_v send_v and_o this_o we_o have_v show_v to_o be_v the_o gentile_n only_o which_o come_v in_o deed_n unto_o christ_n but_o serve_v he_o not_o with_o such_o affection_n as_o be_v meet_v and_o that_o it_o can_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n agree_v to_o the_o jew_n who_o never_o will_v be_v write_v citizen_n of_o this_o kingdom_n moreover_o neither_o do_v antichrist_n come_v while_o the_o old_a temple_n stand_v neither_o shall_v he_o sit_v therein_o afterward_o see_v it_o be_v overthrow_v long_o since_o never_o to_o be_v re-edify_v more_o as_o the_o angel_n teach_v and_o the_o desolation_n shall_v continue_v even_o to_o the_o consummation_n and_o end_n dan._n 9.27_o beside_o how_o can_v the_o apostle_n call_v that_o god_n temple_n which_o god_n will_v detest_v and_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v found_v by_o any_o authority_n of_o he_o but_o by_o antichrist_n commandment_n alone_o as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o vaunt_v himself_o for_o the_o only_a god_n these_o and_o many_o other_o thing_n do_v teach_v that_o it_o be_v least_o of_o all_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o salomon_n temple_n yet_o you_o say_v this_o opinion_n be_v the_o more_o common_a probable_a and_o learned_a but_o by_o what_o reason_n i_o pray_v you_o because_o say_v you_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v never_o mean_v the_o christian_a church_n but_o always_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o short_a sentence_n contain_v two_o notable_a falsehood_n the_o first_o be_v that_o you_o say_v by_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v never_o mean_v in_o the_o apostle_n writing_n the_o christian_a church_n for_o paul_n in_o ephes_n 2.21.22_o speak_v thus_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o who_o all_o the_o build_n fit_o couple_v together_o grow_v unto_o a_o holy_a temple_n in_o the_o lord_n in_o who_o you_o also_o be_v build_v together_o to_o be_v the_o habitation_n of_o god_n by_o the_o spirit_n and_o what_o other_o thing_n do_v the_o apocalypse_n mean_v by_o that_o so_o often_o name_n of_o the_o temple_n but_o the_o holy_a christian_a assembly_n arise_v and_o measure_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n chap._n 11.1_o then_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n open_v chap._n 11.9_o and_o they_o come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n neither_o can_v any_o enter_v into_o temple_n chap._n 15.6.8_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v destroy_v before_o this_o revelation_n be_v make_v lest_o perhaps_o you_o shall_v think_v that_o that_o be_v mean_v by_o these_o word_n this_o be_v the_o first_o falsehood_n the_o second_o be_v where_o you_o say_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n evermore_o signify_v the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o what_o be_v there_o so_o many_o jerusalem_n temple_n as_o there_o be_v faithful_a person_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n paul_n speak_v in_o word_n common_a to_o every_o christian_a know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o if_o any_o destroy_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 3.16.17_o know_v you_o not_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o cor._n 6.19_o to_o let_v pass_v the_o thing_n i_o mention_v a_o little_a before_o you_o certes_o be_v a_o more_o speedy_a builder_n than_o solomon_n which_o can_v build_v so_o many_o temple_n in_o so_o short_a a_o space_n but_o what_o can_v not_o you_o do_v which_o make_v a_o christ_n every_o day_n of_o bread_n but_o this_o be_v a_o small_a matter_n you_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v so_o speak_v therefore_o you_o bring_v some_o great_a thing_n namely_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n latin_n and_o greek_a for_o many_o age_n never_o call_v the_o church_n of_o christian_n temple_n but_o oratory_n
conversion_n and_o in_o the_o legend_n of_o the_o invention_n of_o the_o cross_n it_o say_v after_o her_o conversion_n for_o she_o go_v to_o seek_v the_o lord_n cross_n and_o certain_a it_o be_v she_o make_v this_o journey_n but_o once_o be_v also_o age_v and_o her_o nephew_n constitute_v caesar_n as_o eusebius_n tel●eth_v in_o vita_fw-la constant_n lib._n 3._o this_o sign_n also_o rely_v upon_o no_o other_o beside_o such_o vain_a witness_n and_o whither_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n or_o no_o let_v the_o reader_n now_o judge_v the_o three_o miracle_n be_v of_o a_o dragon_n lurk_v in_o a_o great_a deep_a ditch_n who_o be_v malcontent_a for_o the_o conversion_n of_o constantine_n and_o his_o people_n kill_v daily_o with_o his_o breath_n more_o than_o 300_o man_n unto_o this_o dragon_n do_v sylvester_n descend_v with_o two_o priest_n at_o the_o commandment_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n that_o appear_v unto_o he_o and_o tie_v his_o chap_n with_o a_o thread_n and_o seal_v with_o a_o ring_n that_o have_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o it_o this_o miracle_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o repeat_v it_o be_v folly_n to_o refute_v by_o these_o miracle_n therefore_o of_o sylvester_n man_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n but_o you_o will_v say_v these_o thing_n perhaps_o be_v false_o record_v of_o he_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v all_o one_o whither_o the_o pope_n himself_o do_v false_a miracle_n or_o that_o false_a one_o be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o by_o his_o man_n all_o tend_v to_o one_o end_n that_o the_o beast_n may_v be_v worship_v that_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v have_v chief_a honour_n second_o i_o say_v that_o miracle_n be_v cease_v in_o the_o time_n of_o chrysostome_n and_o augustine_n for_o so_o chrysostome_n on_o 1._o cor._n 2._o homil._n 6._o render_v a_o reason_n why_o sign_n be_v do_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o in_o his_o time_n not_o namely_o because_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o certain_a and_o necessary_a thing_n be_v by_o so_o much_o be_v f●ith_o the_o lesser_a and_o a_o little_a after_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o certain_a argume●●_n be_v show_v by_o so_o much_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o faith_n aba●ed_v therefore_o their_o wer●_n no_o sign●●_n do_v at_o that_o present_a so_o a●gustine_n also_o de_fw-fr vera_fw-la relic_n cap._n 25._o say_v for_o sing_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v spread_v and_o found_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n neither_o be_v th●se_a miracle_n suffer_v to_o endure_v unto_o our_o time_n lest_o the_o mind_n shall_v always_o seek_v visible_a thing_n and_o by_o the_o custom_n of_o they_o man_n kind_n shall_v wax_v cold_a which_o by_o the_o newness_n of_o they_o be_v set_v on_o fire_n neither_o ought_v we_o now_o to_o doubt_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v who_o when_o they_o preach_v those_o thing_n which_o few_o can_v attayn_v yet_o can_v they_o persuade_v people_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v and_o again_o they_o say_v why_o be_v not_o the_o miracle_n do_v which_o be_v report_v to_o have_v be_v do_v i_o can_v very_o say_v that_o they_o be_v necessary_a before_o the_o world_n do_v believe_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o world_n may_v bel●eve_v whosoever_o still_o seek_v wonder_n that_o he_o may_v believe_v he_o himself_o be_v a_o great_a wonder_n which_o believe_v not_o when_o the_o world_n believe_v these_o testimony_n do_v convince_v all_o your_o popish_a miracle_n which_o be_v almost_o infinite_a of_o fraud_n and_o cozenage_n at_o the_o least_o since_o that_o time_n and_o sure_o it_o seem_v god_n of_o his_o singular_a providence_n have_v put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o old_a miracle_n before_o that_o age_n that_o antichrist_n with_o his_o mate_n may_v the_o better_o be_v know_v when_o he_o shall_v come_v forth_o with_o his_o new_a pomp_n of_o miracle_n three_o there_o be_v not_o want_v man_n of_o your_o own_o crew_n which_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o vanity_n of_o your_o miracle_n as_o alexander_n de_fw-fr hales_n par_fw-fr 4._o quaest_n 53._o man_n 4._o art_n 3._o solu_fw-la 2._o in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o appear_v flesh_n sometime_o by_o man_n procurement_n sometime_o by_o the_o devil_n operation_n and_o nicol._n lyra_n on_o daniel_n sometime_o in_o the_o church_n the_o people_n be_v great_o deceive_v with_o miracle_n feighn_v by_o the_o priest_n or_o such_o as_o stick_v unto_o they_o for_o lucre_n four_o example_n also_o prove_v it_o such_o as_o to_o omit_v innumerable_a other_o be_v in_o that_o famous_a conflict_n of_o the_o franciscan_n and_o dominican_n among_o the_o man_n of_o berne_n about_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n certain_a monk_n as_o peucerus_n tell_v in_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o chronicle_n when_o they_o can_v not_o prevail_v by_o authority_n of_o testimony_n betake_v themselves_o for_o help_v unto_o juggle_a steight_n for_o hide_v themselves_o in_o a_o image_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n that_o be_v artificial_o make_v for_o this_o purpose_n they_o counterfeit_a in_o her_o marvellous_a gesture_n so_o as_o they_o persuade_v the_o people_n that_o she_o do_v mourn_v lament_v complayn_n shed_v tear_n and_o give_v answesr_n to_o they_o that_o ask_v of_o she_o which_o fraud_n be_v manifest_v the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v burn_v the_o day_n before_o the_o kalend_n of_o july_n in_o the_o year_n 1590._o where_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o this_o deceit_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o ignorant_a people_n before_o there_o rise_v a_o contention_n between_o the_o religious_a themselves_o to_z wete_z the_o master_n of_o these_o juggle_n who_o know_v well_o by_o what_o sleight_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o deceive_v the_o world_n do_v easy_o find_v out_o the_o author_n of_o such_o a_o wicked_a prank_n but_o let_v i_o come_v unto_o your_o own_o family_n you_o know_v that_o at_o rome_n the_o name_n of_o one_o father_n justinian_n a_o jesuite_n be_v famous_a who_o first_o feighn_v himself_o a_o leper_n that_o he_o may_v deceiv_v man_n by_o a_o lie_a miracle_n of_o receive_v his_o health_n then_o when_o this_o succeed_v well_o with_o he_o he_o feighn_v that_o his_o jesuitical_a habit_n be_v strike_v through_o with_o the_o bullet_n of_o a_o certain_a gun_n shut_v off_o but_o when_o the_o same_o come_v to_o his_o flesh_n by_o god_n admirable_a power_n it_o rebound_v back_o without_o any_o hurt_v of_o he_o why_o yea_o for_o jesuit_n body_n be_v brazen_a wall_n these_o thing_n at_o the_o first_o be_v believe_v afterward_o they_o be_v find_v false_a so_o that_o now_o at_o rome_n when_o any_o impudent_a fraud_n be_v cast_v in_o a_o man_n tooth_n he_o be_v call_v the_o second_o justinian_n but_o this_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n to_o jesuit_n who_o many_o of_o your_o own_o side_n do_v confess_v as_o be_v public_o report_v to_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o semble_v dissemble_a feighning_n and_o belie_v all_o thing_n so_o as_o it_o be_v for_o their_o benefit_n for_o this_o cause_n they_o speak_v shrewd_o of_o the_o miracle_n of_o ignatius_n and_o your_o xaverius_n in_o who_o you_o glory_n not_o only_o as_o a_o principal_a ornament_n of_o the_o order_n of_o jesuit_n but_o also_o of_o the_o whole_a popish_a religion_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 14._o and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n though_o xaverius_n among_o the_o indian_n so_o far_o from_o all_o trial_n do_v all_o those_o marvellous_a work_n which_o maphaeus_n ribademeirus_n and_o tursellinus_n make_v mention_n of_o it_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v marvele_v that_o he_o die_v the_o common_a death_n and_o be_v not_o rather_o take_v away_o in_o a_o fyerie_a chariot_n that_o be_v reserve_v with_o henoch_n and_o elias_n he_o may_v come_v at_o last_o to_o destroy_v antichrist_n do_v you_o give_v credit_n to_o these_o indian_a letter_n when_o as_o you_o may_v remember_v how_o that_o the_o jesuit_n publish_v in_o a_o book_n set_v out_o that_o theodore_n beza_n be_v dead_a and_o before_o he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n be_v convert_v by_o mean_n of_o one_o of_o your_o man_n to_o your_o romish_a religion_n &_o that_o by_o his_o exemple_n many_o other_o citizen_n of_o geneva_n renounce_v their_o former_a error_n embrace_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n you_o have_v not_o forget_v i_o trow_v for_o ignorant_a you_o can_v be_v of_o a_o matter_n so_o rife_o in_o all_o man_n mouth_n how_o theod._n beza_n be_v marvellous_o raise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a do_v by_o letter_n write_v in_o french_a and_o latin_a engrave_v as_o on_o a_o public_a pillar_n for_o all_o christendom_n the_o incredible_a impudence_n of_o your_o jesuit_n now_o therefore_o you_o may_v publish_v the_o indian_a miracle_n of_o xaverius_n when_o your_o so_o egregious_a prank_n be_v in_o the_o open_a light_n and_o eye_n of_o all_o europe_n endless_a it_o be_v to_o sail_v into_o the_o sea_n of_o all_o your_o lie_a sign_n therefore_o have_v i_o lief_o to_o
shall_v come_v to_o pass_v between_o that_o sign_n give_v &_o this_o thanksgiving_n the_o first_o gratulation_n be_v of_o a_o great_a multitude_n in_o heaven_n that_o be_v of_o the_o mix_a multitude_n of_o the_o church_n conversant_a on_o earth_n for_o we_o keep_v in_o the_o common_a signification_n of_o this_o word_n which_o bear_v not_o that_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v refer_v to_o any_o knowledge_n which_o the_o heavenly_a soul_n have_v of_o thing_n do_v with_o we_o the_o citizen_n therefore_o of_o this_o militant_a church_n in_o every_o country_n where_o the_o fame_n shall_v come_v they_o shall_v leap_v for_o joy_n and_o shall_v break_v forth_o into_o this_o grateful_a commemoration_n ¶_o haleluia_o halleluiah_n be_v a_o hebrew_n word_n praise_v you_o the_o lord_n whereby_o the_o faithful_a exhort_v one_o a_o other_o to_o give_v thanks_n and_o prepare_v their_o mind_n as_o it_o be_v with_o this_o preface_n true_a joy_n suffer_v not_o itself_o to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o any_o one_o but_o take_v to_o herself_o fellow_n to_o who_o she_o may_v both_o impart_v herself_o and_o also_o may_v be_v more_o stir_v up_o by_o the_o joint_a affection_n of_o other_o this_o one_o word_n contain_v large_a matter_n of_o very_o great_a joy_n but_o why_o do_v the_o heavenly_a multitude_n speak_v now_o in_o hebrew_n be_v there_o more_o holiness_n in_o these_o lettre_n and_o syllable_n than_o in_o other_o they_o be_v toy_n be_v then_o some_o hebrew_n word_n keep_v as_o osanna_n amen_o abba_n and_o the_o like_a which_o we_o shall_v use_v as_o token_n of_o our_o concord_n with_o the_o ancient_a church_n that_o both_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o same_o god_n and_o invocate_v he_o alone_o this_o indeed_o be_v a_o profitable_a cause_n of_o retain_v these_o word_n but_o especial_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o reason_n in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n after_o rome_n be_v overthrow_v shall_v provoke_v their_o brethren_n the_o jew_n to_o the_o faith_n that_o impediment_n be_v take_v away_o which_o most_o of_o all_o hinder_v their_o conversion_n it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o the_o crucifyer_n shall_v acknowledge_v the_o same_o lord_n while_o this_o flourish_v or_o be_v at_o all_o which_o give_v leave_v to_o crucify_v he_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o hebrew_n word_n now_o sound_v again_o so_o often_o praise_n be_v not_o in_o these_o word_n before_o time_n but_o when_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v at_o hand_n join_v next_o to_o this_o rejoice_v for_o just_a cause_n now_o the_o saint_n do_v speak_v with_o the_o tongue_n of_o one_o sheepfold_n ¶_o salvation_n and_o honour_n and_o glory_n that_o be_v the_o praise_n of_o salvation_n honour_n and_o glory_n and_o praise_n of_o power_n be_v give_v to_o our_o lord_n glory_n be_v a_o certain_a very_o excellent_a opinion_n which_o a_o man_n have_v of_o any_o one_o excellency_n therefore_o call_v of_o the_o grecian_n doxa_fw-la wherefore_o in_o this_o destruction_n of_o rome_n so_o bright_a a_o beam_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o power_n shall_v shine_v forth_o that_o all_o the_o faithful_a shall_v admire_v it_o and_o be_v astonish_v honour_n be_v that_o worship_n both_o inward_a and_o outward_a whereby_o we_o do_v reverence_n so_o great_a excellency_n it_o be_v &_o aught_o always_o to_o be_v join_v with_o glory_n otherweise_v vain_a be_v that_o estimation_n of_o one_o which_o no_o duty_n accompany_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a read_v praise_n &_o glory_n and_o power_n be_v to_o our_o god_n the_o complut_n and_o the_o king_n bible_n have_v salvation_n and_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o our_o god_n 2_o because_o true_a and_o righteous_a the_o truth_n in_o judgment_n respect_v the_o promise_n righteousness_n reward_v according_a to_o their_o desert_n the_o credit_n of_o both_o these_o fall_v into_o utter_a decay_n with_o the_o world_n because_o of_o delay_v from_o whence_o now_o for_o good_a cause_n god_n be_v praise_v of_o his_o people_n in_o both_o these_o respect_n whereas_o he_o have_v prove_v sufficient_o to_o the_o world_n that_o he_o do_v punish_v naughty_a act_n and_o that_o he_o neglect_v not_o the_o injury_n which_o be_v do_v to_o he_o 3_o and_o again_o they_o say_v a_o other_o thanks_n give_v the_o thing_n be_v more_o certain_o know_v the_o first_o tiding_n of_o the_o take_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v cause_v the_o first_o as_o it_o seem_v but_o when_o the_o faithful_a shall_v have_v learned_a that_o the_o same_o be_v utter_o overthrow_v without_o all_o hope_n of_o renew_v they_o shall_v renew_v their_o joy_n and_o shall_v give_v new_a thanks_n a_o fresh_a the_o second_o be_v do_v in_o few_o word_n than_o the_o former_a peradventure_o according_a to_o our_o disposition_n who_o first_o brunt_n be_v most_o vehement_a ¶_o and_o her_o smoke_n rise_v up_o that_o be_v now_o be_v she_o deliver_v up_o to_o eternal_a punishment_n to_o be_v torment_v for_o a_o everlasting_a fire_n be_v show_v by_o the_o smoke_n ascend_v for_o evermore_o by_o which_o kind_n of_o speak_v be_v signify_v that_o the_o continual_a remembrance_n of_o her_o punishment_n shall_v be_v with_o all_o the_o godly_a always_o a_o token_n whereof_o they_o shall_v have_v continual_o before_o their_o eye_n the_o smoke_n ascend_v without_o intermission_n lest_o perhaps_o they_o shall_v forget_v it_o he_o allude_v to_o the_o eternal_a torment_n of_o the_o wicked_a therefore_o the_o eternity_n of_o the_o punishment_n shall_v give_v a_o new_a cause_n of_o gladness_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n when_o they_o know_v that_o the_o insolency_n of_o the_o wicked_a whore_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v restrain_v for_o the_o present_a but_o also_o that_o none_o shall_v have_v any_o fear_n of_o she_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v 4_o and_o those_o fowr_n and_o twenty_o elder_n fall_v down_o such_o be_v the_o rejoice_v of_o the_o mix_a multitude_n there_o follow_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o faithful_a gather_v together_o solemn_o which_o do_v labour_n open_o and_o joint_o to_o the_o same_o duty_n of_o thanks_n give_v for_o this_o multitude_n of_o elder_n and_o beast_n give_v a_o show_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n which_o god_n the_o father_n for_o his_o son_n sake_n count_v such_o as_o this_o most_o holy_a company_n represent_v and_o therefore_o as_o often_o as_o any_o thing_n be_v perform_v by_o a_o common_a name_n that_o be_v show_v by_o this_o sacred_a senate_n as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o chap._n 4._o such_o therefore_o shall_v be_v the_o order_n of_o give_v thanks_n that_o the_o end_n and_o conclusion_n of_o the_o common_a thanks_n give_v be_v reserve_v to_o the_o public_a congregation_n and_o so_o it_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o private_a rejoice_v always_o go_v before_o the_o common_a &_o public_a any_o blast_n of_o report_n be_v wont_a to_o stir_v up_o that_o first_o this_o be_v not_o undertake_v but_o when_o the_o thing_n be_v thorough_o know_v and_o undoubted_a but_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n fall_v down_o when_o the_o beast_n give_v glory_n and_o thanks_n to_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n it_o belong_v to_o these_o to_o moderate_v the_o whole_a action_n in_o the_o public_a assembly_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o congregation_n ought_v to_o join_v their_o prayer_n and_o to_o testify_v their_o consent_n by_o a_o common_a voice_n in_o the_o end_n according_a to_o this_o custom_n there_o be_v rehearse_v here_o only_o two_o word_n amen_o allelujah_o as_o though_o that_o former_a be_v of_o the_o elder_n this_o latter_a the_o sum_n of_o the_o thanks_n give_v which_o the_o beast_n utter_v in_o conceive_a word_n but_o this_o order_n have_v be_v declare_v more_o full_o in_o chap._n 4._o from_o whence_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v understand_v the_o same_o which_o now_o be_v show_v brief_o but_o observe_v that_o the_o last_o song_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v gratulatory_a which_o yield_v no_o other_o song_n than_o halleluiah_n even_o as_o the_o book_n of_o the_o psalm_n be_v conclude_v with_o song_n of_o praise_n she_o sunge_v in_o time_n past_o many_o lamentable_a song_n and_o hymn_n of_o a_o mix_a kind_n but_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o comedy_n shall_v be_v doubtless_o a_o most_o joyful_a triumph_n and_o these_o be_v the_o funeral_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o rite_n by_o which_o her_o burial_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v the_o day_n and_o year_n can_v certain_o be_v set_v down_o in_o which_o her_o funeral_n shall_v be_v yet_o from_o other_o scripture_n i_o think_v it_o to_o be_v clear_a that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v differ_v at_o the_o further_a beyond_o three_o score_n year_n the_o sixteen_o chapter_n have_v teach_v that_o next_o after_o that_o the_o vial_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o throne_n euphsates_n shall_v be_v dry_v up_o that_o be_v after_o rome_n destroy_v
bridegroom_n or_o of_o the_o jew_n themselves_o who_o embrace_v the_o call_n the_o gentile_n have_v learn_v before_o to_o find_v haleluia_o and_o now_o he_o bid_v they_o speak_v to_o their_o brethren_n and_o to_o stir_v up_o they_o by_o a_o new_a shout_n also_o the_o next_o verse_n follow_v declare_v the_o exultation_n of_o friend_n rejoice_v in_o their_o behalf_n but_o this_o terrible_a voice_n as_o it_o be_v of_o water_n and_o thunder_n seem_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o jew_n yet_o nevertheless_o it_o may_v be_v the_o joint_a voice_n of_o both_o people_n who_o soever_o it_o be_v either_o of_o the_o one_o or_o of_o both_o we_o understand_v from_o hence_o a_o effectual_a call_n but_o the_o voice_n call_v they_o to_o praise_n god_n because_o now_o he_o have_v obtain_v his_o kingdom_n christ_n have_v always_o rule_v but_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v then_o flourish_v most_o clear_o which_o in_o former_a time_n partly_o the_o infidelity_n of_o the_o jew_n partly_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o dragon_n and_o beast_n do_v much_o obscure_a now_o a_o stone_n hew_v out_o of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n shall_v reign_v which_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o be_v destroy_v for_o ever_o neither_o be_v lest_o to_o a_o other_o people_n dan._n 2.44_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o god_n omnipotency_n in_o get_v this_o kingdom_n whereby_o in_o very_a truth_n he_o declare_v himself_o most_o mighty_a in_o destroy_v the_o enemy_n who_o with_o all_o their_o strength_n will_v resist_v this_o kingdom_n when_o it_o begin_v 7_o let_v we_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v so_o the_o friend_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n seem_v to_o provoke_v one_o a_o other_o to_o joy_n let_v we_o say_v they_o adorn_v ourselves_o most_o gorgeous_o as_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v do_v in_o triumph_n and_o festival_n day_n and_o common_a rejoice_v and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n indeed_o very_o great_o to_o be_v triumph_v for_o to_o understand_v that_o brethren_n divide_v from_o we_o by_o so_o lamentable_a a_o divorce_n so_o many_o age_n be_v now_o at_o length_n choose_v into_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o we_o of_o which_o joy_n the_o prophet_n speak_v many_o excellent_a thing_n ¶_o because_o the_o marriage_n be_v come_v for_o as_o the_o former_a come_n be_v call_v gamos_a a_o marriage_n mat._n 22.2_o whereby_o christ_n join_v to_o himself_o the_o gentile_n and_o take_v they_o into_o the_o marriage_n bed_n so_o likeweise_v much_o more_o shall_v be_v the_o time_n of_o marriage_n when_o he_o shall_v draw_v the_o jew_n who_o first_o he_o woo_v to_o his_o love_n and_o company_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o in_o the_o same_o place_n it_o be_v say_v he_o make_v marriage_n for_o his_o son_n not_o one_o but_o more_o the_o former_a at_o his_o first_o come_v the_o second_o at_o this_o call_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v more_o evident_a in_o the_o greek_a where_o gamos_a marriage_n be_v use_v in_o the_o singular_a number_n the_o latin_n call_v every_o particular_a marriage_n nuptias_fw-la marriage_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n ¶_o and_o his_o wife_n have_v make_v herself_o ready_a both_o sister_n as_o well_o the_o gentile_n as_o the_o jew_n make_v one_o wife_n be_v marry_v to_o the_o same_o bridegroom_n as_o once_o leah_n and_o rachel_n to_o jacob_n leah_n indeed_o more_o deform_v to_o weet_v wee_a gentile_n have_v enter_v first_o into_o the_o company_n of_o the_o bed_n and_o become_v also_o far_o more_o fruitful_a but_o the_o choose_a and_o fair_a rachel_n the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v at_o length_n also_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o bed_n chamber_n and_o shall_v become_v a_o mother_n of_o most_o sweet_a child_n 8_o and_o to_o she_o be_v grant_v to_o weet_v the_o new_a bride_n which_o of_o late_o be_v altogether_o void_a of_o this_o apparel_n the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v most_o glorious_a in_o her_o first_o beginning_n a_o crown_n of_o twelve_o star_n adorn_v her_o head_n &_o all_o the_o residue_n of_o she_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n chap._n 12.1_o therefore_o this_o fine_a linen_n be_v not_o provide_v for_o she_o but_o to_o that_o other_o which_o before_o time_n lie_v ill-favoured_a foul_a naked_a not_o cover_v so_o much_o as_o with_o rag_n these_o fine_a linen_n garment_n be_v give_v whereby_o she_o may_v hide_v her_o deform_a nakedness_n and_o this_o fine_a linen_n be_v jesus_n christ_n make_v we_o for_o righteousness_n and_o salvation_n by_o imputation_n which_o garment_n the_o jew_n want_v while_o refuse_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n they_o go_v about_o to_o establish_v their_o own_o righteousness_n but_o at_o length_n be_v graff_v in_o by_o faith_n they_o shall_v renounce_v their_o former_a hope_n &_o shall_v embrace_v this_o salvation_n clad_v with_o this_o glorious_a garment_n only_o ¶_o that_o she_o shall_v be_v array_v with_o pure_a fine_a linen_n and_o shine_v he_o say_v not_o fine_a linen_n be_v give_v unto_o she_o but_o to_o she_o be_v grant_v that_o she_o shall_v be_v array_v with_o fine_a linen_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o difference_n because_o in_o that_o former_a be_v signify_v that_o fine_a linen_n be_v give_v immediate_o in_o this_o mediate_o by_o faith_n this_o fine_a linen_n be_v pure_a and_o shine_a pure_a in_o respect_n of_o justification_n because_o it_o present_v we_o unblameable_a and_o without_o fault_n free_a from_o all_o spot_n &_o blemish_n shine_v in_o respect_n of_o glory_n both_o with_o god_n who_o because_o of_o this_o purity_n in_o his_o son_n make_v we_o heir_n of_o his_o eternal_a kingdom_n and_o also_o with_o man_n to_o who_o it_o manife_v our_o adoption_n by_o her_o most_o shine_a fruit_n which_o the_o spirit_n work_v together_o with_o we_o make_v manifest_a unto_o they_o ¶_o for_o the_o fine_a linen_n be_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o saint_n behold_v how_o distinct_o and_o plaiyn_o the_o spirit_n speak_v for_o he_o say_v not_o that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v fine_a linen_n but_o contrariweise_v that_o the_o fine_a linen_n be_v the_o righteousness_n neither_o of_o the_o wicked_a as_o when_o a_o man_n be_v first_o convert_v to_o god_n but_o of_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a justification_n you_o even_o of_o those_o who_o piety_n do_v most_o of_o all_o show_n itself_o come_v not_o from_o themselves_o and_o from_o thing_n ingraff_v but_o abide_v without_o in_o the_o outward_a garment_n to_z wete_z of_o christ_n who_o we_o put_v on_o by_o faith_n only_o a_o most_o plain_a scripture_n which_o o_o you_o papist_n consider_v diligent_o that_o your_o blasphemous_a pride_n be_v at_o length_n reject_v you_o may_v seek_v true_a salvation_n from_o thence_o from_o whence_o alone_o it_o may_v be_v obtain_v do_v you_o thrust_v upon_o god_n the_o merit_n of_o the_o saint_n away_o with_o those_o pollute_a garment_n the_o fine_a linen_n give_v be_v our_o iustification_n the_o clothing_n be_v not_o make_v of_o our_o virtue_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v before_o god_n no_o similitude_n do_v set_v more_o clear_o before_o our_o eye_n the_o imputation_n of_o righteousness_n by_o faith_n than_o this_o garment_n use_v so_o often_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o why_o will_v thou_o say_v do_v he_o say_v iustification_n rather_o than_o justification_n not_o to_o destroy_v the_o only_a righteousness_n of_o faith_n but_o see_v dikaioma_n justification_n be_v a_o proof_n whereby_o a_o man_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v just_a as_o chap._n 15.4_o and_o there_o be_v a_o double_a argument_n to_o this_o purpose_n one_o before_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o which_o respect_n christ_n be_v the_o white_a fine_a linen_n of_o the_o saint_n chap._n 7.13.14_o another_o before_o man_n by_o the_o work_n of_o sanctification_n in_o regard_n of_o this_o double_a argument_n the_o spirit_n say_v iustification_n that_o he_o may_v contain_v in_o one_o word_n that_o which_o even_o now_o he_o declare_v by_o two_o pure_a and_o shine_a for_o the_o work_n of_o holiness_n if_o they_o be_v take_v asunder_o be_v not_o pure_a or_o if_o faith_n be_v consider_v by_o itself_o it_o be_v not_o shine_v for_o it_o lie_v hide_v within_o far_o from_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n neither_o of_o both_o therefore_o apart_o can_v be_v call_v iustification_n both_o be_v to_o be_v join_v together_o to_o express_v the_o force_n of_o the_o multitude_n and_o to_o who_o this_o fine_a linen_n be_v give_v both_o be_v find_v in_o they_o 9_o then_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o write_v who_o say_v not_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n for_o the_o elder_n worship_v he_o ver_fw-la 4._o this_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a be_v the_o fellow_n servant_n of_o john_n therefore_o it_o be_v some_o angel_n to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o seal_v this_o prophecy_n first_o therefore_o he_o bid_v he_o write_v by_o
which_o so_o solemn_a commandment_n he_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v in_o it_o a_o great_a and_o strange_a matter_n we_o commit_v to_o write_v thing_n the_o credit_n where_o of_o we_o will_v have_v to_o be_v confirm_v unto_o all_o posterity_n for_o which_o cause_n law_n be_v grave_v once_o in_o brass_n and_o set_v up_o in_o a_o public_a place_n also_o god_n speak_v to_o jeremy_n concern_v this_o same_o thing_n write_v say_v he_o for_o thyself_o all_o the_o word_n which_o i_o speak_v unto_o thou_o in_o a_o book_n chap._n 30.2_o as_o if_o god_n provide_v for_o our_o infirmity_n shall_v give_v we_o seal_v writing_n from_o which_o we_o may_v call_v upon_o he_o for_o help_v more_o free_o and_o bold_o if_o peradventure_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o forget_v his_o promise_n but_o not_o only_a john_n be_v confirm_v hereby_o but_o also_o the_o event_n be_v respect_v as_o we_o have_v see_v from_o the_o like_a place_n before_o as_o if_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o holy_a man_n some_o public_a writing_n shall_v be_v set_v forth_o which_o most_o plain_o shall_v confirm_v this_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v new_a but_o foreshow_v of_o god_n from_o the_o further_a time_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o praise_v in_o the_o same_o but_o the_o time_n will_v manifest_v what_o at_o length_n be_v to_o be_v think_v concern_v this_o matter_n but_o what_o be_v it_o which_o he_o be_v command_v to_o write_v that_o they_o be_v bless_v which_o be_v call_v to_o the_o marriage_n supper_n of_o the_o lamb_n a_o thing_n indeed_o wonderful_a &_o never_o hear_v off_o before_o that_o all_o shall_v be_v bless_v which_o be_v call_v before_o time_n this_o rule_n be_v in_o force_n many_o be_v call_v few_o choose_v which_o thing_n example_n also_o have_v prove_v true_a when_o the_o calling_n fall_v not_o out_o prosperous_o to_o the_o ancient_a guest_n who_o be_v call_v refuse_v to_o come_v but_o now_o it_o shall_v be_v otherweise_v all_o the_o call_v shall_v come_v glad_o neither_o shall_v allege_v for_o their_o excuse_n thing_n of_o small_a importance_n as_o do_v those_o former_a mat._n 22._o so_o great_a now_o shall_v be_v the_o efficacy_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o shall_v obey_v at_o the_o first_o hear_v before_o say_v isaiah_n she_o travailde_v she_o bring_v forth_o and_o before_o her_o pain_n come_v she_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o man_n child_n who_o have_v hear_v such_o a_o thing_n who_o have_v see_v such_o thing_n shall_v the_o earth_n be_v bring_v forth_o in_o one_o day_n or_o shall_v a_o nation_n be_v bear_v at_o once_o for_o assoon_o as_o zion_n travail_v she_o bring_v forth_o her_o child_n etc._n etc._n so_o psal_n 110.3_o thy_o people_n most_o voluntary_a of_o all_o man_n in_o the_o time_n of_o thy_o army_n in_o the_o beautiful_a place_n of_o thy_o holiness_n from_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o mourning_n shall_v be_v to_o thou_o dew_n of_o thy_o youth_n many_o such_o thing_n may_v be_v bring_v and_o peradventure_o it_o will_v be_v profitable_a at_o least_o weise_v that_o occasion_n may_v be_v give_v to_o our_o man_n to_o consider_v diligent_o of_o those_o place_n from_o the_o true_a meaning_n whereof_o i_o fear_v that_o we_o err_v by_o interpret_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v as_o if_o they_o be_v pass_v this_o sentence_n therefore_o which_o be_v command_v to_o be_v write_v take_v away_o all_o scruple_n from_o john_n he_o may_v have_v mind_v the_o former_a obstinacy_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n have_v doubt_v of_o their_o conversion_n but_o the_o angel_n command_v this_o care_n to_o depart_v there_o shall_v be_v so_o great_a diligence_n of_o the_o people_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o to_o be_v call_v away_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o jew_n both_o here_o and_o elsewhere_o in_o many_o place_n be_v call_v keclemenous_a in_o the_o preterperfect_a tense_n by_o a_o certain_a prerogative_n of_o call_v as_o it_o seem_v as_o who_o be_v call_v ever_o since_o the_o first_o time_n of_o the_o world_n mat._n 22.3.4.8_o but_o the_o gentile_n kletous_a mat._n 22.14_o because_o they_o be_v first_o call_v at_o christ_n come_v or_o rather_o after_o his_o death_n which_o difference_n seem_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o this_o revelation_n from_o whence_o chap._n 17.14_o they_o who_o the_o lamb_n be_v their_o captain_n do_v subdue_v the_o ten_o king_n be_v name_v call_v and_o choose_v who_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o be_v the_o faithful_a among_o the_o gentile_n ¶_o these_o word_n be_v true_a the_o second_o confirmation_n take_v from_o the_o principal_a author_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v respect_v not_o i_o as_o report_v any_o thing_n of_o my_o own_o but_o be_v so_o persuade_v that_o this_o be_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n as_o thou_o thyself_o hear_v even_a now_o with_o thy_o own_o ear_n ver_fw-la 5._o but_o the_o natural_a place_n of_o the_o word_n have_v a_o emphasis_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a which_o by_o the_o displace_n be_v lose_v these_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n himself_o that_o be_v of_o most_o divine_a most_o excellent_a and_o most_o certain_a truth_n true_a be_v also_o some_o word_n of_o man_n but_o there_o be_v some_o infirmity_n in_o our_o most_o true_a thing_n we_o always_o speak_v from_o the_o earth_n john_n 3.31_o therefore_o some_o preferment_n be_v attribute_v to_o this_o truth_n which_o appear_v not_o if_o we_o change_v the_o order_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v no_o strange_a thing_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v true_a 10_o and_o i_o fall_v down_o before_o his_o foot_n why_o now_o more_o than_o before_o be_v he_o abash_v with_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o angel_n but_o he_o have_v be_v accustom_v now_o a_o long_a time_n to_o wonderful_a sight_n or_o be_v it_o for_o joy_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o his_o nation_n so_o in_o deed_n it_o seem_v for_o john_n be_v ravish_v as_o it_o be_v clear_a from_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o angel_n with_o the_o sweetness_n of_o this_o prophecy_n for_o sudden_a joy_n wherewith_o he_o be_v carry_v away_o will_v give_v more_o worship_n than_o be_v meet_v to_o so_o welcome_a a_o messenger_n ¶_o see_v that_o not_o to_o weet_v that_o thou_o worship_v i_o not_o a_o defective_a speech_n note_v out_o the_o grievousnesse_n of_o the_o naughty_a act_n for_o he_o make_v speed_n and_o finish_v not_o the_o sentence_n for_o haste_n even_o as_o we_o be_v wont_v to_o prohibit_v a_o thing_n either_o by_o sudden_a cry_v out_o or_o by_o the_o hand_n when_o the_o thing_n permit_v not_o any_o time_n for_o word_n he_o confirm_v the_o prohibition_n by_o two_o reason_n first_o from_o the_o equal_a dignity_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n i_o be_o say_v he_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n and_o not_o only_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o of_o thy_o brethren_n which_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o jesu_n al_n our_o office_n be_v equal_a they_o who_o preach_v christ_n &_o salvation_n by_o he_o be_v in_o equal_a dignity_n with_o they_o which_o reveal_v thing_n to_o come_v the_o office_n of_o preach_v be_v equal_a to_o the_o office_n of_o reveal_v this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o verse_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o jesu_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v because_o adoration_n belong_v to_o god_n only_o worship_v he_o say_v he_o to_o who_o alone_o such_o worship_n be_v due_a do_v not_o you_o o_o popish_a idolater_n tremble_v at_o these_o word_n you_o take_v great_a pain_n about_o devise_v reason_n why_o the_o angel_n prohibit_v adoration_n as_o though_o he_o himself_o have_v not_o render_v most_o clear_a one_o in_o his_o own_o word_n but_o what_o reason_n bring_v you_o to_o weet_v that_o after_o our_o flesh_n take_v of_o christ_n the_o angel_n be_v great_o afraid_a to_o see_v the_o same_o prostrate_a before_o they_o as_o gregory_z the_o great_a will_v have_v it_o moreover_o because_o beside_o this_o dignity_n man_n be_v also_o minister_n of_o christ_n prophet_n and_o messenger_n of_o the_o evangelical_n doctrine_n and_o martyr_n for_o the_o same_o be_v it_o so_o do_v you_o not_o perceive_v that_o you_o be_v kill_v with_o your_o own_o sword_n if_o they_o fear_v much_o to_o see_v our_o nature_n prostrate_a to_o they_o after_o the_o same_o take_v of_o christ_n why_o do_v you_o cast_v down_o your_o nature_n to_o stone_n and_o paint_a image_n and_o put_v the_o holy_a angel_n in_o fear_n if_o they_o will_v not_o be_v worship_v of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n either_o at_o length_n cease_v to_o do_v wicked_o or_o at_o least_o confess_v
shall_v be_v manifest_v then_o to_o all_o man_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o supreme_a king_n which_o be_v not_o so_o evident_a to_o the_o world_n in_o former_a age_n the_o christian_a name_n have_v be_v spread_v before_o now_o into_o all_o country_n but_o how_o miserable_o do_v the_o heathen_a roman_a emperor_n vex_v that_o first_o when_o it_o begin_v since_o that_o time_n by_o how_o sundry_a entreprise_n have_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n endeavour_v to_o bring_v destruction_n unto_o it_o neither_o yet_o at_o this_o time_n do_v he_o surcease_v from_o his_o former_a practice_n have_v now_o the_o turk_n also_o a_o partner_n in_o the_o same_o traffic_n although_o both_o follow_v a_o divers_a way_n of_o obtain_v their_o desire_n doubtless_o since_o that_o christ_n have_v be_v make_v know_v to_o we_o gentile_n he_o have_v not_o seem_v so_o much_o to_o reign_v a_o to_o serve_v a_o miserable_a service_n yet_o nevertheless_o he_o give_v always_o some_o proof_n of_o his_o kingdom_n even_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o these_o misery_n because_o he_o preserve_v his_o church_n against_o all_o man_n will_n howsoever_o he_o yield_v she_o to_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o to_o be_v over_o whelm_v almost_o with_o all_o calamity_n and_o misery_n but_o now_o at_o length_n the_o contrary_a shall_v be_v manifest_a to_o all_o man_n christ_n himself_o will_v take_v the_o government_n into_o his_o hand_n &_o will_v give_v the_o sovereignty_n over_o the_o thing_n on_o earth_n to_o his_o church_n then_o shall_v be_v the_o time_n when_o the_o stone_n be_v cut_v of_o the_o mountain_n without_o hand_n shall_v break_v in_o piece_n the_o iron_n the_o clay_n the_o silver_n and_o the_o gold_n and_o shall_v obtain_v a_o kingdom_n that_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v neither_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o another_o people_n dan._n 2.44.45_o which_o thing_n be_v make_v more_o apparent_a from_o the_o name_n write_v on_o the_o thigh_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o body_n and_o even_o as_o though_o it_o be_v in_o the_o foot_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o call_v all_o beneath_o the_o belly_n the_o foot_n gen._n 49.10_o isay_n 7.20_o therefore_o he_o have_v this_o name_n write_v in_o this_o part_n not_o only_o because_o that_o which_o be_v low_a in_o christ_n scarce_o reach_v to_o his_o foot_n be_v high_a than_o the_o high_a thing_n in_o man_n monarch_n bear_v the_o title_n of_o empire_n on_o their_o head_n on_o their_o crown_n and_o diadem_n but_o christ_n carry_v a_o lofty_a title_n on_o his_o thigh_n than_o any_o monarch_n ever_o have_v obtain_v not_o i_o say_v for_o this_o cause_n only_o but_o chief_o because_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o time_n wherein_o his_o foot_n that_o be_v his_o church_n shall_v bear_v rule_n before_o time_n they_o be_v fine_a brass_n burn_v in_o a_o furnace_n yet_o free_a from_o any_o hurt_n chap._n 1.15_o but_o now_o after_o the_o fiery_a trial_n they_o shall_v enjoy_v a_o most_o noble_a kingdom_n now_o christ_n shall_v honour_v the_o place_n of_o his_o foot_n isay_n 60.13_o this_o be_v that_o kingdom_n which_o all_o the_o prophet_n do_v praise_n with_o so_o great_a deck_v of_o word_n of_o which_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n but_o after_o that_o it_o have_v flourish_v a_o long_a time_n on_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v translate_v from_o hence_o at_o length_n into_o heaven_n at_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n so_o then_o these_o four_o name_n contain_v the_o whole_a state_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o call_n of_o the_o iswe_n unto_o the_o last_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n all_o which_o time_n may_v be_v distinguish_v into_o three_o part_n the_o first_o of_o which_o go_v before_o the_o battle_n with_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o dragon_n whereunto_o the_o first_o two_o name_n with_o the_o whole_a preparation_n be_v apply_v the_o second_o be_v bestow_v in_o the_o battle_n itself_o signify_v by_o a_o three_o name_n the_o three_o be_v all_o the_o other_o space_n from_o the_o victory_n until_o christ_n shall_v come_v to_o which_o the_o four_o most_o mighty_a name_n agree_v 17_o then_o i_o see_v a_o certain_a angel_n stand_v in_o the_o sun_n thus_o far_o the_o description_n of_o the_o captain_n now_o of_o certain_a soldier_n who_o must_v fight_v with_o the_o beast_n these_o be_v muster_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o herald_n of_o arm_n stand_v in_o the_o sun_n who_o differ_v from_o he_o that_o pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o sun_n for_o this_o by_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n shall_v bring_v a_o plague_n that_o other_o shall_v provoke_v the_o saint_n to_o war_n by_o exhort_v neither_o perhaps_o do_v he_o that_o pour_v out_o the_o vial_n stand_v in_o the_o very_a sun_n but_o set_v in_o a_o other_o place_n shall_v sprinkle_v his_o liquor_n upon_o it_o this_o sit_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o chariot_n of_o the_o sun_n have_v his_o stand_n in_o the_o very_a light_n but_o how_o will_v thou_o say_v can_v we_o conceive_v any_o such_o thing_n yea_o by_o meditate_v upon_o it_o i_o think_v light_n may_v be_v give_v to_o this_o sun_n from_o the_o 12._o chap._n 1._o where_o we_o hear_v that_o the_o woman_n be_v clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n that_o be_v shine_v round_o about_o with_o a_o most_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o scripture_n with_o the_o clearness_n whereof_o be_v adorn_v as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o garment_n she_o come_v forth_o abroad_o among_o the_o people_n &_o show_v herself_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n but_o one_o may_v be_v say_v to_o stand_v in_o his_o clothing_n as_o the_o wife_n stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o king_n in_o gold_n of_o ophir_n psal_n 45.10_o vherfore_o this_o angel_n shall_v be_v some_o citizen_n of_o that_o particular_a church_n which_o shall_v shine_v most_o clear_o by_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o very_a sacred_a truth_n &_o shall_v be_v asleep_o natural_a daughter_n of_o the_o woman_n clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o purity_n of_o all_o particular_a church_n which_o profess_v christ_n but_o that_o one_o do_v take_v out_o more_o dregs_n than_o a_o other_o but_o this_o angel_n shall_v be_v a_o member_n of_o a_o most_o pure_a and_o chaste_a congregation_n which_o above_o other_o shall_v shine_v with_o this_o glorious_a apparel_n this_o be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o convert_a jew_n of_o who_o he_o begin_v to_o speak_v even_o now_o but_o a_o angel_n of_o the_o west_n part_n call_v the_o western_a man_n to_o war_n against_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n the_o plague_n of_o our_o world_n and_o indeed_o all_o the_o force_n of_o this_o last_o war_n in_o the_o west_n seem_v to_o be_v convert_v against_o that_o holy_a congregation_n which_o even_o now_o i_o say_v do_v shine_v as_o the_o sun_n for_o which_o cause_n a_o citizen_n of_o it_o before_o the_o rest_n shall_v sound_v the_o alarm_n and_o call_v together_o the_o rest_n not_o so_o much_o to_o the_o battle_n as_o to_o the_o spoil_n fron_n which_o thing_n in_o some_o sort_n may_v be_v understand_v what_o be_v that_o place_n armagedon_n in_o the_o west_n part_n whereof_o we_o hear_v in_o chap._n 16.16_o to_o weet_v such_o a_o particular_a holy_a congregation_n or_o city_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o place_n of_o this_o war_n for_o this_o be_v har_z gbei_fw-mi qodhesch_fw-mi the_o hill_n of_o precious_a fruit_n which_o god_n esteem_v dear_a to_o he_o then_o all_o delight_n and_o it_o be_v like_a that_o after_o rome_n be_v overthrow_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v again_o place_v his_o chair_n at_o avenion_n but_o i_o have_v no_o certainty_n concern_v this_o thing_n i_o follow_v only_a conjecture_n but_o if_o he_o shall_v sit_v there_o where_o shall_v he_o soon_o and_o more_o glad_o strain_n to_o do_v his_o uttermost_a than_o against_o the_o genevean_n people_n of_o savoy_n hardby_o a_o heart_n sore_o thanks_n be_v to_o god_n now_o for_o some_o year_n which_o shall_v then_o also_o be_v the_o totment_n of_o their_o eye_n and_o very_o far_o be_v it_o that_o my_o word_n shall_v grieve_v any_o man_n the_o sun_n of_o our_o world_n shine_v there_o and_o from_o thence_o &_o that_o always_o it_o may_v shine_v more_o every_o godly_a man_n desire_v earnest_o of_o god_n neither_o let_v my_o repeat_v admonition_n be_v superfluous_a hold_v that_o thou_o have_v let_v no_o man_n take_v thy_o crown_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n our_o prayer_n shall_v not_o be_v want_v for_o thou_o that_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n may_v ever_o shine_v upon_o thou_o and_o drive_v far_o away_o all_o darkness_n ¶_o say_v to_o all_o the_o fowl_n that_o do_v fly_v by_o the_o mid_n of_o heaven_n it_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o chap._n 8.13_o &_o 14.6_o that_o mesouranema_n signifi_v between_o heaven_n and_o earth_n not_o
thing_n be_v pass_v away_o all_o thing_n be_v become_v new_a 2_o cor._n 5.17_o ¶_o for_o the_o first_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v pass_v away_o shall_v the_o church_n then_o fail_v utter_o among_o the_o gentile_n for_o heaven_n note_v out_o more_o pure_a godlinesse●_n as_o we_o say_v even_o now_o how_o this_o shall_v be_v abolish_v it_o may_v be_v doubtful_a because_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v mention_v before_o as_o concern_v the_o earth_n it_o be_v not_o so_o doubtful_a consider_v that_o the_o spirit_n have_v already_o teach_v sufficient_o that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n with_o his_o whole_a false_o so_o call_v catholic_n flock_n shall_v be_v root_v out_o utter_o before_o this_o day_n as_o then_o touch_v the_o reform_a church_n shall_v the_o receive_n of_o the_o jew_n cause_v the_o alienation_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o before_o time_n the_o cast_v away_o of_o they_o be_v the_o reconcile_n of_o the_o world_n rom._n 11.15_o it_o may_v seem_v so_o in_o deed_n especial_o consider_v that_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o a_o certain_a fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v accomplish_v as_o be_v like_a at_o the_o call_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o 25._o but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n the_o revelation_n teach_v otherweise_v to_o weet_v that_o the_o gentile_n which_o shall_v be_v save_v shall_v walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o it_o and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v bring_v their_o glory_n and_o honour_n to_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n ver_fw-la 24._o yea_o paul_n in_o the_o place_n before_o say_v plain_o avouch_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v very_o flourish_v among_o the_o gentile_n when_o the_o jew_n be_v call_v for_o say_v he_o if_o the_o cast_v away_o of_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o reconcile_n of_o the_o world_n what_o shall_v the_o reconcile_n be_v but_o life_n from_o the_o dead_a this_o be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v what_o shall_v the_o receive_n be_v but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o general_a resurrection_n whereby_o they_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n among_o all_o nation_n come_v at_o length_n to_o the_o truth_n shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n from_o which_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v not_o a_o certain_a end_n of_o believe_a at_o the_o call_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o that_o faith_n among_o the_o gentile_n afterward_o shall_v utter_o perish_v even_o as_o no_o more_o can_v be_v pour_v into_o a_o full_a vessel_n but_o a_o more_o abundant_a access_n of_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n towards_o what_o part_n soever_o their_o country_n do_v extend_v obey_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o that_o say_n the_o lord_n shall_v be_v king_n over_o the_o whole_a earth_n in_o that_o day_n shall_v there_o be_v one_o lord_n and_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v one_o zach._n 14.9_o and_o the_o lord_n will_v destroy_v in_o this_o mountain_n the_o figure_n of_o this_o veil_n that_o be_v spread_v upon_o all_o nation_n and_o the_o cover_n wherewith_o all_o nation_n be_v cover_v he_o will_v swallow_v up_o death_n itself_o into_o victory_n and_o the_o lord_n jehovah_n shall_v wipe_v away_o the_o tear_n from_o all_o face_n and_o will_v take_v away_o the_o reproach_n of_o his_o people_n out_o of_o all_o the_o earth_n isaiah_n chap._n 25.7.8_o for_o than_o they_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o wilderness_n shall_v kneel_v before_o he_o and_o his_o enemy_n shall_v lick_v the_o dust_n the_o king_n of_o the_o ocean_n sea_n and_o of_o the_o land_n shall_v bring_v present_n the_o king_n of_o sheba_n and_o seba_n shall_v bring_v gift_n final_o all_o king_n shall_v worship_v he_o and_o all_o nation_n shall_v serve_v he_o psal_n 72.9.10.11_o how_o then_o in_o this_o celebrate_n shall_v the_o new_a heaven_n pass_v away_o that_o be_v the_o more_o pure_a church_n among_o the_o gentile_n must_v we_o distinguish_v concern_v the_o gentile_n whereof_o some_o be_v yet_o stranger_n from_o christ_n othersome_a be_v name_v christian_n now_o by_o the_o space_n of_o many_o age_n as_o we_o of_o europe_n first_o of_o all_o shall_v they_o come_v to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o prophecy_n even_o now_o allege_v declare_v and_o many_o other_o agree_v with_o they_o shall_v these_o depart_v and_o fall_v away_o as_o the_o vision_n seem_v to_o show_v which_o these_o word_n do_v set_v forth_o the_o fi●st_a heaven_n say_v he_o pass_v away_o what_o other_o heaven_n be_v then_o among_o 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o prophecy_n then_o among_o we_o of_o europe_n for_o the_o most_o part_n certain_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n increase_v the_o suspicion_n to_o weet_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o pillar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n never_o to_o be_v cast_v forth_o chap._n 3_o 12._o why_o be_v this_o attribute_v as_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o it_o if_o all_o the_o rest_n enjoy_v the_o same_o benefit_n alike_o it_o seem_v therefore_o that_o as_o once_o the_o unfruitful_a fig_n tree_n be_v cut_v up_o and_o the_o ill_a husband_v vineyard_n be_v take_v from_o the_o old_a farmer_n be_v let_v out_o to_o other_o luke_n 13.6_o mat._n 21.41_o so_o the_o church_n now_o a_o long_a time_n evil_a entreat_v among_o they_o of_o europe_n do_v purpose_n to_o truss_v up_o bag_n and_o baggage_n and_o to_o forsake_v they_o at_o length_n who_o have_v long_o since_o forsake_v the_o purity_n and_o love_n of_o it_o what_o though_o now_o it_o be_v call_v heaven_n the_o heaven_n themselves_o be_v impure_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o god_n job._n 15_o 15._o and_o the_o more_o in_o deed_n at_o this_o time_n our_o heaven_n which_o rather_o enjoy_v such_o name_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o popish_a infernal_a gulf_n than_o for_o any_o heavenly_a clearness_n of_o his_o own_o but_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o this_o calamity_n of_o europe_n that_o after_o the_o first_o resurrection_n there_o be_v a_o thousand_o year_n of_o reign_n with_o christ_n chap._n 20.6_o that_o be_v there_o shall_v be_v among_o those_o nation_n to_o who_o this_o resurrection_n have_v befall_v a_o continuance_n of_o the_o truth_n by_o the_o space_n of_o so_o many_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o restauration_n thereof_o but_o we_o know_v that_o this_o be_v proper_a to_o our_o country_n but_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v that_o perhaps_o this_o reign_n shall_v be_v such_o as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o thousand_o year_n before_o that_o resurrection_n when_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v chap._n 20.4_o when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v of_o a_o few_o elect_v in_o who_o hart_n be_v the_o love_n of_o the_o only_a salvation-bringing_a truth_n howsoever_o the_o antichristian_a impiety_n savour_v better_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o multitude_n certain_o other_o scripture_n seem_v to_o lean_v more_o this_o way_n threaten_v that_o all_o religion_n shall_v be_v so_o defile_v with_o so_o many_o corruption_n that_o fierce_a any_o wholesome_a footstep_n of_o it_o shall_v remain_v entire_a and_o who_o be_v so_o ignorant_a of_o thing_n that_o have_v not_o just_a cause_n enough_o to_o fear_v much_o especial_o when_o he_o see_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v despise_v every_o where_o new_a error_n to_o spring_v up_o daily_o old_a to_o be_v bring_v back_o again_o from_o hell_n all_o godliness_n to_o be_v convert_v into_o gain_n and_o ambition_n many_o indeed_o be_v the_o argument_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n will_v depart_v from_o we_o short_o as_o once_o from_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n ezech._n 9.3_o unless_o peradventure_o some_o comfort_n arise_v from_o hence_o that_o this_o departure_n of_o the_o first_o heaven_n and_o earth_n may_v be_v understand_v not_o of_o the_o utter_a decay_n of_o the_o truth_n among_o the_o european_n but_o of_o such_o a_o renew_n among_o the_o jew_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o excellency_n whereof_o whatsoever_o be_v excellent_a before_o may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v pass_v and_o vanish_v away_o when_o the_o light_n of_o the_o moon_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n sevenfold_a as_o the_o light_n of_o seven_o day_n &_o the_o sun_n shall_v blush_v when_o the_o lord_n shall_v reign_v in_o zion_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v out_o of_o isaiah_n or_o final_o unless_o it_o have_v some_o weight_n that_o the_o spirit_n here_o speak_v so_o exquisite_o not_o say_v the_o former_a heaven_n and_o former_a earth_n be_v pass_v away_o but_o the_o first_o heaven_n and_o the_o first_o earth_n as_o though_o these_o word_n respect_v not_o the_o gentile_n at_o all_o but_o only_o the_o legal_a worship_n which_o right_o one_o may_v call_v the_o first_o heaven_n ordain_v at_o the_o first_o of_o god_n himself_o but_o the_o christian_a people_n
shall_v bear_v the_o sway_n and_o cast_v into_o the_o sea_n the_o gold_n and_o silver_n with_o disdayn_n and_o cast_v the_o brass_n of_o brittle_a man_n and_o yrn_v '_o into_o the_o main_a then_o shall_v the_o worldly_a element_n all_o desolate_a remain_v sibyl_n prophesi_v that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o antichrist_n which_o we_o have_v have_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n the_o sovereignty_n of_o thing_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o a_o woman_n but_o what_o manner_n of_o one_o be_v it_o such_o a_o one_o as_o we_o proper_o so_o call_v nothing_o less_o this_o woman_n be_v the_o church_n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n which_o she_o call_v a_o widow_n not_o because_o she_o be_v a_o widow_n by_o the_o death_n of_o her_o husband_n as_o this_o word_n be_v wont_v to_o signif_n usual_o but_o because_o she_o be_v on_o earth_n far_o from_o he_o for_o she_o be_v also_o a_o widow_n which_o after_o marriage_n dwell_v not_o together_o with_o her_o husband_n for_o what_o cause_n soever_o it_o be_v or_o she_o may_v be_v call_v a_o widow_n because_o before_o her_o restore_n she_o sit_v a_o widow_n so_o long_o as_o in_o hosea_n sit_v still_o for_o my_o sake_n many_o day_n neither_o be_v marry_v to_o any_o other_o for_o the_o child_n of_o is●ael_n shall_v remain_v many_o day_n without_o a_o king_n and_o without_o a_o prince_n &_o without_o a_o offering_n &_o withtout_a a_o image_n and_o without_o a_o ephod_n and_o without_o teraphim_n afterward_o they_o shall_v return_v etc._n etc._n ch_z 3.3.4.5_o so_o isayas_n so_o that_o he_o shall_v say_v in_o his_o heart_n who_o have_v get_v i_o these_o see_v i_o have_v be_v baren_a and_o a_o desolate_a captive_n and_o a_o wanderer_n too_o &_o fro_o &c._n &c._n chap_n 49.21_o this_o then_o be_v that_o widow_n which_o after_o she_o have_v govern_v for_o a_o time_n at_o length_n shall_v deliver_v all_o her_o subject_n to_o be_v translate_v in_o to_o heaven_n whither_o at_o length_n they_o shall_v go_v when_o this_o whole_a world_n be_v destroy_v with_o fire_n see_v therefore_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o those_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o future_a state_n after_o the_o resurrection_n for_o what_o king_n shall_v then_o bring_v their_o glory_n thither_o unless_o peradventure_o as_o the_o jesuite_n write_v ridiculous_o by_o building_n and_o enrich_v temple_n by_o send_v predicatour_n into_o sundry_a country_n and_o by_o restrein_v the_o nation_n that_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o faith_n do_v the_o man_n dream_v wake_v when_o he_o write_v these_o thing_n that_o he_o will_v have_v any_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v desire_v in_o the_o future_a state_n but_o i_o will_v not_o vex_v the_o man_n be_v as_o it_o seem_v sick_a of_o a_o ague_n 25_o and_o the_o gate_n of_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v shut_v all_o danger_n shall_v be_v so_o far_o away_o that_o no_o fear_n thereof_o shall_v trouble_v they_o theridamas_n shall_v be_v no_o enemy_n that_o shall_v invade_v but_o the_o gate_n shall_v be_v open_a always_o to_o receive_v new_a stranger_n who_o in_o great_a company_n shall_v flow_v thither_o continual_o isay_n 60.11_o bless_a be_v that_o city_n which_o shall_v enjoy_v so_o happy_a so_o glorious_a and_o secure_a peace_n ¶_o for_o than_o shall_v be_v no_o night_n there_o these_o word_n be_v somewhat_o otherweise_v then_o in_o isaiah_n who_o speak_v thus_o and_o they_o shall_v open_v thy_o gate_n continual_o neither_o day_n nor_o night_n shall_v they_o be_v shut_v etc._n etc._n that_o be_v they_o shall_v be_v open_a always_o there_o be_v the_o same_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n but_o the_o mention_n of_o the_o night_n be_v omit_v as_o unprosperous_a and_o whole_o unmeete_a for_o the_o happiness_n of_o this_o city_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o gate_n shall_v never_o be_v shut_v for_o they_o be_v not_o wont_a to_o be_v shut_v in_o the_o day_n time_n neither_o shall_v it_o be_v needful_a to_o add_v nor_o in_o the_o night_n because_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o night_n there_o 26_o and_o glory_n shall_v be_v bring_v we_o speak_v of_o this_o matter_n at_o the_o 24._o verse_n but_o the_o repetition_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a which_o teach_v that_o the_o gentile_n shall_v have_v this_o continual_a desire_n to_o enrich_v and_o store_v this_o city_n not_o because_o they_o shall_v give_v themselves_o to_o the_o gather_n of_o riches_n or_o to_o ambition_n but_o because_o their_o good_a will_n shall_v be_v most_o grateful_a who_o shall_v always_o wish_v very_o well_o unto_o it_o or_o as_o the_o word_n do_v sound_a and_o they_o shall_v bring_v the_o glory_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o gentile_n unto_o it_o that_o be_v the_o jew_n themselves_o as_o though_o now_o he_o will_v show_v how_o much_o they_o shall_v do_v by_o their_o own_o strength_n when_o he_o have_v show_v sufficient_o what_o shall_v come_v to_o they_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o other_o whereby_o not_o only_o they_o shall_v be_v advance_v but_o also_o shall_v be_v augment_v with_o great_a glory_n by_o their_o own_o riches_n 27_o there_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o it_o any_o thing_n that_o defile_v this_o glory_n shall_v remain_v no_o less_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a than_o secure_a and_o without_o fear_n of_o enemy_n for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o river_n flow_v beiond_v the_o bank_n do_v carry_v with_o they_o very_o much_o dirty_a filth_n whereby_o the_o whole_a water_n become_v foul_a so_o for_o just_a cause_n it_o may_v peradventure_o be_v fear_v that_o in_o this_o very_a populous_a assembly_n of_o the_o gentile_n many_o wicked_a man_n shall_v assemble_v together_o by_o who_o contagion_n the_o most_o clear_a purity_n at_o length_n shall_v be_v defile_v but_o the_o spirit_n bid_v they_o to_o be_v secure_a as_o touch_v this_o point_n god_n will_v provide_v that_o no_o filthy_a and_o impure_a thing_n shall_v enter_v in_o whereby_o the_o flower_n of_o so_o great_a dignity_n may_v be_v distain_v never_o so_o little_a ¶_o but_o they_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n ei_fw-la i_o unless_o they_o which_o be_v write_v but_o the_o elect_n be_v not_o among_o the_o unclean_a who_o through_o christ_n have_v no_o spot_n wrinkle_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n ephes_n 5.27_o therefore_o ei_fw-la i_o be_v not_o to_o be_v translate_v as_o a_o exceptive_a by_o nisi_fw-la unless_o but_o as_o a_o discretive_a by_o say_v but_o as_o theodore_n beza_n have_v note_v unless_o perhaps_o there_o be_v a_o respect_n to_o the_o former_a time_n as_o paul_n concern_v the_o elect_a and_o such_o be_v you_o every_o one_o but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v 1_o cor._n 6.11_o as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v no_o unclean_a person_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o city_n unless_o they_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n who_o before_o their_o cal_n be_v unclean_a but_o be_v sanctify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n cease_v to_o be_v so_o chap._n 22._o after_o he_o show_v i_o a_o pure_a river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n clear_a as_o crystal_n proceed_v out_o of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lamb_n 2_o in_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o street_n thereof_o and_o a_o the_o one_o and_o other_o side_n of_o the_o river_n be_v the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o bear_v twelve_o manner_n of_o fruit_n and_o give_v fruit_n every_o month_n and_o her_o leaf_n be_v for_o the_o health_n of_o the_o nation_n 3_o and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o curse_n against_o any_o man_n but_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o lamb_n shall_v be_v in_o it_o and_o his_o servant_n shall_v serve_v he_o 4_o and_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n and_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v in_o their_o forehead_n 5_o and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o night_n there_o neither_o have_v they_o any_o need_n of_o the_o light_n of_o a_o candle_n nor_o of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n for_o the_o lord_n god_n give_v they_o light_a and_o they_o shall_v reign_v for_o evermore_o 6_o then_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o these_o word_n be_v faithful_a and_o true_a and_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n send_v his_o angel_n to_o show_v to_o his_o servant_n the_o thing_n which_o must_v short_o be_v fulfil_v 7_o behold_v i_o come_v quick_o bless_a be_v he_o that_o keep_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o this_o book_n 8_o and_o i_o john_n be_o he_o which_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v these_o thing_n and_o when_o i_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v i_o fall_v down_o to_o worship_n before_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o angel_n which_o show_v i_o these_o thing_n 9_o but_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o for_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n and_o of_o thy_o brethren_n the_o prophet_n and_o of_o